MYTH AND MEANING IN THREE NOVELS OF HUGH MACLENNAN

Transcription

MYTH AND MEANING IN THREE NOVELS OF HUGH MACLENNAN
MYTH AND MEANING IN THREE NOVELS
OF HUGH MACLENNAN
by
ROBERT KEITH GILLEY
B.A., The U n i v e r s i t y of B r i t i s h Columbia, 1963
A THESIS SUBMITTED IN PARTIAL FULFILMENT OF
THE REQUIREMENTS FOR THE DEGREE OF
Master of A r t s
i n the Department
of
English
We a c c e p t t h i s
t h e s i s as conforming t o the
r e q u i r e d standard
THE UNIVERSITY
OF BRITISH COLUMBIA
April,
1967
In
presenting
for
an a d v a n c e d
that
thesis
thesis
degree
the: L i b r a r y
study.
for
at
in p a r t i a l
f u l f i l m e n t of
the U n i v e r s i t y o f
y h a l l make
I f u r t h e r agree
Department
or
this
it
that
requirements
B r i t i s h Columbia,
freely available for
permission
the
I
reference
for extensive
and
copying
of
scholarly
p u r p o s e s may be g r a n t e d
by t h e Head o f my
or
representatives.
understood
by h i s
p u b l i c a t i o n of
wi t h o u t my w r i t t e n
this
thesis
for
permission.
Department
The U n i v e r s i t y o f B r i t i s h
V a n c o u v e r 8 , Canada
Columbia
It
is
f i n a n c i a l gain
shall
that
not
agree
this
copying
be a l l o w e d
Abstract
The purpose of t h i s e s s a y i s to determine
Hugh MacLennan has
the use to which
put h i s knowledge of c l a s s i c a l
e s p e c i a l l y myth, i n w r i t i n g t h r e e o f h i s n o v e l s .
first
to
The n o v e l s are
c o n s i d e r e d i n d i v i d u a l l y and are then r e l a t e d to one
i n d i c a t e the development
technique and
literature,
elements
another
o f t h e i r s t r u c t u r e s and themes, MacLennan's
thought.
The f i r s t
c h a p t e r shows MacLennan's a f f i n i t y
for classical
i n d i c a t e s the g e n e r a l c r i t i c a l awareness o f c l a s s i c a l
i n h i s n o v e l s , and a l s o shows how mythic a n a l y s i s i s o f
use i n i n t e r p r e t i n g the n o v e l s .
C e n t r a l to MacLennan's use o f
c l a s s i c a l myth i s Homer's Odyssey,
of
literature,
and
the b a s i c p l o t and c h a r a c t e r s
the Greek e p i c are d e s c r i b e d , i n d i c a t i n g what MacLennan chooses
from the c l a s s i c
f o r h i s own
purposes.
The importance o f myth, as
such, i s c o n s i d e r e d , and i t i s suggested t h a t MacLennan h i m s e l f
has attempted
to w r i t e a "myth" a p p r o p r i a t e to modern Canada.
The second c h a p t e r i s a c o n s i d e r a t i o n o f Barometer
i n d i c a t i n g mythic p a r a l l e l s and r e l e v a n t s t r u c t u r e s o f
The
Rising,
imagery.
p l o t s t r u c t u r e i s examined and i s compared to the mythoi or
a r c h e t y p a l p l o t s suggested by Northrop F r y e i n Anatomy of C r i t i c i s m .
The n o v e l i s shown to be a comic-romance i n which
the romantic
hero i s dominant, a l t h o u g h t h e r e i s an i r o n i c hero p r e s e n t .
main theme appears as a s e a r c h f o r n a t i o n a l
The
identity.
The t h i r d c h a p t e r i s a c o n s i d e r a t i o n of Each Man's Son, a g a i n
i n d i c a t i n g mythic
p a r a l l e l s and r e l e v a n t s t r u c t u r e s o f
imagery.
Examination of the p l o t s t r u c t u r e r e v e a l s a growing s t r e s s on the
ii
i r o n i c h e r o and an u n s t r e s s i n g
of the romantic h e r o .
appears as a more p e r s o n a l s e a r c h f o r
The theme
identity.
The f o u r t h c h a p t e r i s a c o n s i d e r a t i o n of The Watch t h a t Ends
the N i g h t , a g a i n i n d i c a t i n g m y t h i c p a r a l l e l s and r e l e v a n t
Here,
the i r o n i c hero comes to f u l l
imagery.
dominance over the r o m a n t i c .
The theme has become almost e n t i r e l y a p e r s o n a l s e a r c h f o r i n t e r n a l
identity.
conflict
larger
It
is
shown how,
i n t h i s n o v e l , MacLennan r e s o l v e s
e x p l o r e d i n the o t h e r two n o v e l s by submerging i t
(basically mystical)
1
how h i s
in a
pattern.
The f i f t h c h a p t e r shows how MacLennan s techniques
have d e v e l o p e d ,
the
and themes
final religio-philosophic resolution
is
r e l a t e d to c l a s s i c a l humanism ( p a r t i c u l a r l y the p h i l o s o p h y o f
Heraclitus),
and how h i s
the modern w o r l d .
use of myth i s
r e l e v a n t and v a l u a b l e
I t becomes c l e a r t h a t
the
f a r t h e r MacLennan
moves from a d i r e c t r e p r e s e n t a t i o n of the c l a s s i c a l myth,
c l o s e r he moves to c r e a t i n g a meaningful myth of h i s
is
r e l a t e d to o t h e r modern w r i t e r s and i s
stream o f modern thought,
literature
Period.
f o l l o w i n g a major theme i n
He comes to a s y n t h e s i s of c l a s s i c a l
i n an a f f i r m a t i v e
the
own.
MacLennan
shown to be i n a main
t h a t has been p a r t i c u l a r l y important s i n c e
which r e s u l t s
to
philosophy.
western
the
Victorian
and C h r i s t i a n
thought
Table o f Contents
Page
Chapter One:
Myth and Humanism
Chapter Two:
Barometer R i s i n g :
The N a t i o n a l Romance
Chapter Three:
Chapter F o u r :
Chapter F i v e :
Bibliography
Each Man's Son:
The Growing Irony
The Watch That Ends The N i g h t :
The Comic S y n t h e s i s
The E t e r n a l Quest
1
20
47
70
103
117
Chapter One:
Myth and Humanism
To most people today a "myth" i s something u n b e l i e v a b l e , a
fanciful
s t o r y n o t to be taken s e r i o u s l y .
"Myths" a r e n o t always
i n a c c o r d w i t h t a n g i b l e f a c t s , and, t h e r e f o r e , to the mind t r a i n e d
to have f a i t h i n l i t t l e but t h a t which can be
scientifically
measured and v a l i d a t e d , myths have n e i t h e r importance nor v a l u e .
Such people may b e l i e v e i n myths themselves but would be
horrified
and
to have them c a l l e d
t h a t , f o r myths are o f the a n c i e n t
pagan w o r l d , products of p r i m i t i v e , u n e n l i g h t e n e d thought.
There a r e o t h e r s , however, who
Hugh MacLennan i s o f t h i s group.
take myths s e r i o u s l y , and
He u t i l i z e s a n c i e n t myth i n h i s
n o v e l s f o r both s t r u c t u r a l and thematic purposes,
c l a s s i c a l and modern p h i l o s o p h y w i t h c l a s s i c a l ,
C h r i s t i a n myth i n an e f f e c t i v e
synthesis.
combining
C e l t i c and
He b e g i n s , i n h i s f i r s t
n o v e l , by o v e r t l y u s i n g a well-known myth as h i s model, but he
g r a d u a l l y develops away from t h i s p r a c t i c e i n l a t e r n o v e l s ,
submerging
the myth and m o d e r n i z i n g i t , m a n i p u l a t i n g i t more to
serve h i s a r t i s t i c
purposes.
The myth remains, b u t , as i t becomes
l e s s e v i d e n t on the s u r f a c e , i t becomes more e f f e c t i v e as a
v e h i c l e of a r t i s t i c expression.
A c o n s i d e r a t i o n of MacLennan's work from t h i s p o i n t o f
view proves that myth i s
most e f f e c t i v e when i t p r o v i d e s no more than what i s n e c e s s a r y
i n a way of an h i s t o r i c a l and contemporary p e r s p e c t i v e -- say,
a d e s c r i p t i o n of r e l e v a n t antecedent e v e n t s , of the c u r r e n t
c r i s i s , and o f the d e s i r e d outcome--to g i v e meaning, s i g n i f i c a n c e ,
". -
-
2
and urgency
to some i n d i v i d u a l or s o c i a l
C e r t a i n l y MacLennan succeeds
--by
effort.^
i n f u s i n g h i s c l a s s i c a l know-
ledge i n t o the i n d i v i d u a l n o v e l s - - i n c r e a t i n g a g e n e r a l
mythic
s t r u c t u r e which i n c l u d e s a l l h i s n o v e l s , and which i s o f r e a l
importance
to the i n d i v i d u a l reader and
t o g e t h e r , the n o v e l s comprise
a s i n g l e major theme:
the s o c i e t y .
a s i g n i f i c a n t whole.
Considered
They
develop
the search of the i n d i v i d u a l f o r h i s
i d e n t i t y , h i s e s s e n t i a l c h a r a c t e r , the quest f o r a u n i f i e d
of the i n d i v i d u a l man,
h i s n a t i o n , and Everyman.
The
r e s o l v e s t h i s theme i n a b l e n d i n g of C h r i s t i a n and
vision
author
classical
thought, w i t h myth a c t i n g as the t a n g i b l e c o r r e l a t i v e of h i s
ideas.
He
i s of a r a r e breed, a t w e n t i e t h c e n t u r y n o v e l i s t
committed to the c l a s s i c a l
fully
tradition.
In both essays and n o v e l s , MacLennan has made h i s commitment
c l e a r , s t r e s s i n g the l a s t i n g v a l u e of the t r a d i t i o n ,
and
i t s philosophy.
For example, i n h i s essay "The
T r a d i t i o n and E d u c a t i o n " , MacLennan defends
i t s literature
Classical
the c l a s s i c a l
liberal
a r t s e d u c a t i o n , and h i s attachment to the t r a d i t i o n i s e v i d e n t
i n h i s a t t a c k on S i r W i l l i a m Dawson f o r what he b e l i e v e s was
Dawson's n e g a t i v e i n f l u e n c e on the development of M c G i l l
University.
He c a l l s Dawson a "fundamental C a l v i n i s t " whose
"main reason f o r opposing
the a r t s was
not h i s b e l i e f
t h a t they
l-Henry A. Murray, "The P o s s i b l e Nature of a 'Mythology to
Come," i n Myth and Mythmaking, ed. H. A. Murray (New York:
George B r a z i l l e r , 1960), p. 337.
were i m p r a c t i c a l , but h i s c o n v i c t i o n that they were
wicked."
The obvious i m p l i c a t i o n i s t h a t Dawson's own a t t i t u d e s were
"wicked"
to the e x t e n t t h a t i n opposing the a r t s he was opposing
the g r e a t humanist
of
t r a d i t i o n passed down from the golden age
Greece.
I t would seem that the a d m i r a t i o n MacLennan h o l d s f o r the
humanist
youth.
t r a d i t i o n i s one t h a t was i n s t i l l e d
i n him from h i s
D e s c r i b i n g h i s f a t h e r , he says,
He was a d o c t o r who spent much of h i s e a r l i e r l i f e i n a
v e r y h a r d p r a c t i c e i n a Cape Breton mining town, but thanks to
h i s c l a s s i c a l i n t e r e s t s he was n o t i s o l a t e d t h e r e . He r e a d
L a t i n and Greek f o r p l e a s u r e ; he read the p h i l o s o p h e r s . . . .
He was democratic i n h i s human d e a l i n g s ; n o t f a m i l i a r , n o t a
glad-hander, n o t a winner o f f r i e n d s and an i n f l u e n c e r o f
people . . . ,
3
I t can be seen from the q u a l i t i e s MacLennan a t t r i b u t e s
to h i s
f a t h e r t h a t to him the c l a s s i c s mean freedom, an escape
i s o l a t i o n , a mental
imprison.
a genuine
freedom
from
t h a t makes the mind i m p o s s i b l e to
These g r e a t works o f the past a l s o appear
to s t i m u l a t e
r e s p e c t f o r o t h e r s , f o r t h e i r worth as i n d i v i d u a l
human b e i n g s .
The c l a s s i c s a r e u s e f u l as a moral
guide.
Not o n l y does MacLennan take h i s g e n e r a l system o f v a l u e s
from the c l a s s i c a l
p h i l o s o p h e r s and poets:
he seems a l s o to
have i d e n t i f i e d h i s n a t i v e l a n d - - i f n o t the whole o f Canada, a t
l e a s t h i s n a t i v e r e g i o n - - w i t h t h a t o f the c l a s s i c a l
2Scotchman's Return and Other Essays
M a c m i l l a n , 1960), p. 68.
3
Ibid.,
p. 64.
(Toronto:
writers,
p a r t i c u l a r l y Homer.
In Nova S c o t i a ,
as i n Greece, the people l i v e d i n s m a l l communities w i t h i n
s i g h t and sound o f the sea.
T h e i r ears and eyes were nouri s h e d by sea-sounds and sea-images.
Homer's r o s e - f i n g e r e d
dawn r i s i n g over the loud-sounding sea, h i s men i n s m a l l
boats b a c k i n g water i n the f o g as they l i s t e n e d to the t e l l t a l e r o a r o f b r e a k e r s on a leeward shore, h i s helmsmen on
c l e a r n i g h t s t a k i n g t h e i r course from A r c t u r u s or the stormy
r i s e o f O r i o n , S c y l l a d i v i n g f o r prey from the c l i f f , Charybd i s s u c k i n g down s m a l l boats i n t o h e r w h i r l p o o l and spewing
them up a g a i n i n a w e l t e r o f b o i l i n g sand, the bones of the!
drowned r o l l i n g f o r ages through the depths o f the sea -these images and c o u n t l e s s o t h e r s from the o l d p o e t i c l i t e r a t u r e o f Greece seemed to d e s c r i b e the environment o f Nova
S c o t i a more a c c u r a t e l y than a n y t h i n g w r i t t e n s i n c e the b i r t h
of C h r i s t . 4
T h i s i n c l i n a t i o n to see h i s homeland i n terms of c l a s s i c a l
l i t e r a t u r e , combined w i t h a g e n e r a l a d m i r a t i o n f o r c l a s s i c a l
thought,
i n e v i t a b l y introduces into h i s novels c l a s s i c a l
ments both m y t h i c a l and
importance
p h i l o s o p h i c a l which are o f extreme
to the n o v e l s ' s t r u c t u r e and meaning.
There
i s general c r i t i c a l
uses c l a s s i c a l mythic
agreement that Hugh MacLennan
p a t t e r n s i n h i s n o v e l s both as
d e v i c e s and f o r thematic purposes.
the f i r s t
to i n d i c a t e c r i t i c a l
MacLennan's work:
structure.
structural
Hugo McPherson was
interest
one
of
i n t h i s a s p e c t of
"Barometer R i s i n g and Two
Solitudes,
f i r s t n o v e l s , have an almost c l a s s i c a l c l a r i t y and
of
ele-
the
simplicity
Each, on m u l t i p l e l e v e l s , d e a l s w i t h the theme
^"Husband and W i f e , " T h i r t y and Three
M a c m i l l a n , 1954), p. 14
(Toronto:
of r e b i r t h
A few years a f t e r t h i s , McPherson
h i s view to say o f Barometer
expanded
R i s i n g that " t h i s s t o r y says
t h i n g s about Canada which take on the v a l i d i t y o f p a r a b l e , " "
and he l i k e n s the s t o r y to the Greek myth i n which Perseus
b a t t l e s the Gorgon.
L a t e r , George Woodcock made a deeper
i n v e s t i g a t i o n of the n o v e l s i n an a r t i c l e
"A N a t i o n ' s Odyssey."
He makes i t c l e a r
significantly
entitled
that
MacLennan not merely e s t a b l i s h e s i n Barometer R i s i n g a
Homeric p l o t o f the wanderer r e t u r n i n g to a m y s t e r i o u s l y
changed homeland.
He a l s o uses f o r the f i r s t time a group
of symbolic c h a r a c t e r s which w i l l r e c u r i n l a t e r permutat i o n s i n h i s l a t e r n o v e l s ; the r e t u r n i n g wanderer, the w a i t i n g woman, the f a t h e r l e s s c h i l d , the wise d o c t o r --sometimes
transformed i n t o the wise o l d man, and the p r i m i t i v e ,
v i o l e n t , but e s s e n t i a l l y good g i a n t . ?
With Woodcock's a n a l y s i s , c r i t i c i s m has begun to p i e r c e
simple borrowings from the c l a s s i c s , beyond
to p e r c e i v e what a r e c l e a r l y
beyond
surface analogies,
the a r c h e t y p e s w i t h i n .
While
Paul Goetsch r e c o g n i z e s i n Barometer R i s i n g "a technique o f
m y s t i f i c a t i o n l o o s e l y p a t t e r n e d on the account o f Ulysses'
r e t u r n of Ithaca,"^
i n Each Man's Son.
Woodcock sees another mythic
Both c r i t i c s
structure
speak o f mythic elements i n
The Novels o f Hugh MacLennan,"
(Summer 1953), p. 186.
Queen's Q u a r t e r l y ,
LX
^ " I n t r o d u c t i o n , " Barometer R i s i n g
& Stewart, 1958), p. x.
(Toronto, M c C l e l l a n d
^Canadian L i t e r a t u r e , 10 (Autumn 1961), p. 9.
^"Too Long to the C o u r t l y Muses," Canadian L i t e r a t u r e ,
10 (Autumn 1961), p. 21
The Watch t h a t Ends the N i g h t
--Goetsch,
f o r instance seeing
i n the n o v e l a " p r o x i m i t y to myth and a l l e g o r i c forms o f o r d e r . "
*
*
*
Most c r i t i c s agree t h a t myth and l i t e r a t u r e are o f the
same f a m i l y o f human e x p r e s s i o n .
word
'myth' means s t o r y :
As R i c h a r d Chase says, "the
a myth i s a t a l e , a n a r r a t i v e , or a
poem; myth i s l i t e r a t u r e and must be c o n s i d e r e d as an a e s t h e t i c
c r e a t i o n of the human i m a g i n a t i o n . " ^
l i t e r a t u r e of a s p e c i a l n a t u r e .
the n a t u r a l w i t h
being
I t i s " l i t e r a t u r e which s u f f u s e s
p r e t e r n a t u r a l e f f i c a c y , " the p r e t e r n a t u r a l
" t h a t which i s m a g i c a l ,
Mysterious,
Myth, o f c o u r s e , i s
the Powerful,
Extraordinary."10
the Uncanny, the Wonderful, the
the T e r r i b l e , the Dangerous, the
I n myth, man expresses h i s awe a t the wonder
of the u n i v e r s e , i t s g r e a t n a t u r a l c y c l e s , i t s o p p o s i t i o n s of
j o y and s u f f e r i n g ,
l i f e and death.
f o r the t i n g e o f awe s u r r o u n d i n g
T h i s may
partly
account
the c l a s s i c a l myths
themselves,
combined w i t h the r e s p e c t due them simply because o f t h e i r
antiquity.
In the western world,
c e r t a i n c o n v e n t i o n a l a t t i t u d e s and
i n t e r p r e t a t i o n s are a s s o c i a t e d w i t h the more v e n e r a b l e
myths, and, as Northrop
Frye
classical
indicates,
When ever we f i n d e x p l i c i t m y t h o l o g i z i n g i n l i t e r a t u r e , or a
w r i t e r t r y i n g to i n d i c a t e what myths he i s p a r t i c u l a r l y
^Quest f o r Myth (Baton Rouge, L a . , L o u i s i a n a S t a t e U.
P r e s s , 1949), p. 73.
l O i b i d . , p. 78.
- 7. -
i n t e r e s t e d i n , we should t r e a t t h i s as c o n f i r m a t o r y or supp o r t i n g evidence f o r our study of the genres and conventions
he i s u s i n g . H
In c h o o s i n g a p a r t i c u l a r myth, the w r i t e r i s d o i n g so w i t h
particular intent;
t h a t i s , the myth he chooses has a c e r t a i n
meaning f o r him which he hopes i s shared w i t h the r e a d e r .
The
c o n v e n t i o n s which l e a d to a common u n d e r s t a n d i n g between the
w r i t e r and h i s reader may
v a r y from age
to age,
but t h e r e
seem to be c e r t a i n c o n v e n t i o n s of a t t a c h i n g meaning to myth
which have v a r i e d s u r p r i s i n g l y l i t t l e .
classical
S t o i c s and
the humanists of the Renaissance
i n t e r p r e t myth on the a l l e g o r i c a l
l e v e l , attempting
the myths to the l e v e l o f t h e i r own
and
For example, the
i t i s most o f t e n t h i s l e v e l we
e x p l i c i t l y uses myth.
intellectual
see when an
inclined
to
"to r a i s e
preoccupations," 2
x
author
From t h i s p e r s p e c t i v e the myths are
taken
"to be i n g e n i o u s l y symbolized concepts o f the nature of the
u n i v e r s e or b e a u t i f u l v e i l s c o n c e a l i n g profound moral
Hugh MacLennan, a humanist and
something
principles."
of a modern s t o i c ,
e x p l i c i t l y uses myth w i t h c o n s c i o u s purpose
as a framework on
which to hang h i s " i n t e l l e c t u a l p r e o c c u p a t i o n s . "
But myth has
v a l u e beyond t h i s , f o r
a l i v e or v i t a l myth i s a r e p r e s e n t a t i o n o f a s t a t e , s i t u a t i o n ,
or event ( p a s t , c u r r e n t or f u t u r e ) which, a t i t s lowest, i s
" M y t h , F i c t i o n , and Displacement," F a b l e s o f I d e n t i t y
York, H a r c o u r t , Brace, 1963), pp. 34-35
x±
(New
l ^ c h a s e , Quest f o r Myth, p.
1 3
Ibid.,
p.
2.
1.
- 8.
-
a c c e p t e d by i t s c a r r i e r s as s u f f i c i e n t l y v a l i d ( c r e d i b l e ,
s a t i s f y i n g ) , o r , a t i t s h i g h e s t , i s embraced as 'the n e a r e s t
approach to a b s o l u t e t r u t h t h a t can be s t a t e d . ' 1 ^
And to the modern c r i t i c there
myth than even t h i s ,
f o r the
of
t r u t h embodied i n myths i s not
that c o n t a i n e d i n " i n g e n i o u s l y
t h a t expressed
i s more to an a u t h o r ' s use
symbolized c o n c e p t s , "
only
but a l s o
i n the a r c h e t y p a l p a t t e r n s which emerge
spontaneously
t
from the w r i t e r s mind, a r c h e t y p e s which need not be
ally
intention-
symbolic.
In the view of
imagery of a work of
the a r c h e t y p a l c r i t i c , an a n a l y s i s
l i t e r a t u r e can r e v e a l p a t t e r n s
c o r r e s p o n d w i t h c e r t a i n a r c h e t y p a l myths.
of
the
which
In F r y e ' s words,
myth i s the c e n t r a l i n f o r m i n g power that g i v e s a r c h e t y p a l
s i g n i f i c a n c e to the r i t u a l and a r c h e t y p a l n a r r a t i v e to the
oracle.
Hence the myth is_ the a r c h e t y p e , though i t might be
c o n v e n i e n t to say myth o n l y when r e f e r r i n g to n a r r a t i v e , and
archetype when speaking of s i g n i f i c a n c e . 1 5
The s i n g l e
at
the
image focuses the r e a d e r ' s
same time as i t
e l o p e d by the
focuses h i s
sum of a l l
the imagery,
The p a t t e r n devand,
the c r i t i c can
the s t r u c t u r a l p r i n c i p l e s a t work i n the n a r r a t i v e .
As these p r i n c i p l e s are the same as
--where
emotion.
interest
the images has the same e f f e c t ,
by a n a l y z i n g the s t r u c t u r e of
determine
intellectual
they are i s o l a t e d - -
those working i n myth
the myth r e v e a l s
l ^ M u r r a y , Myth and Mythmaking,
p.
an a r c h e t y p a l
337
15"Hie Archetypes of L i t e r a t u r e , " F a b l e s ,
p.
15
p a t t e r n which i n t u r n y i e l d s a deeper s i g n i f i c a n c e to the
n a r r a t i v e o f both an i n t e l l e c t u a l and emotional
An
nature.
i n v e s t i g a t i o n o f the author's e x p l i c i t use o f myth
on the one hand and the p a t t e r n s o f imagery on the o t h e r
leads to v a l u a b l e i n s i g h t s i n t o both
MacLennan's n o v e l s .
the form and meaning o f
Not o n l y i s the i n t e r p r e t a t i o n o f
i n d i v i d u a l n o v e l s enhanced but, by comparing the r e s u l t s o f
the separate a n a l y s e s , a s i g n i f i c a n t
be d i s c e r n e d r u n n i n g through
path o f development can
the body o f h i s work.
n o v e l s to a n a l y z e i n t h i s way a r e Barometer R i s i n g ,
The b e s t
the f i r s t
p u b l i s h e d n o v e l (1941), Each Man's Son, the b e s t middle
(1951), and The Watch t h a t Ends the N i g h t , the l a t e s t
(1959).
novel
novel
S t r u c t u r a l s i m i l a r i t i e s and d i f f e r e n c e s between these
n o v e l s do much to i n d i c a t e MacLennan's major themes and h i s
development o f these themes.
H i s thematic
interests vary
the i n d i v i d u a l l e v e l o f p e r s o n a l i n n e r c o n f l i c t
o f s o c i a l change, and to develop
from
to the l e v e l
these themes he uses methods
v a r y i n g from o m n i s c i e n t d i d a c t i c i s m to imagery t h a t speaks
for i t s e l f .
As a means of a r t i s t i c
e x p r e s s i o n , the imagery,
of c o u r s e , i s most e f f e c t i v e , and the p a t t e r n s o f imagery a r e
most s i g n i f i c a n t .
Frye i n d i c a t e s t h a t i n i t s a r c h e t y p a l
phase, l i t e r a t u r e i m i t a t e s n a t u r e as a c y c l i c a l
p r o c e s s , and
i m i t a t e s a l s o a v i s i o n o f s o c i a l d e s i r e , n o t expressed as a
c y c l e but as a d i a l e c t i c
illustrating
the f u l f i l m e n t o f
d e s i r e and the o b s t a c l e s i n the way o f t h a t f u l f i l m e n t .
-
"Archetypal
criticism,
rhythms or p a t t e r n s ,
and
the r e l a t i v e
erent
10.
t h e r e f o r e , r e s t s on two
one
cyclical,
s t r e s s e s MacLennan puts on
types of o r g a n i z i n g
a t t i t u d e s towards man
This leads
the other
and
finally
patterns
organizing
dialectic,"l^
these two
diff-
r e v e a l s h i s changing
society.
to a c o n s i d e r a t i o n of MacLennan's
c o n t r i b u t i o n to the development o f a n a t i o n a l c o n s c i o u s n e s s .
As
Joseph Campbell p o i n t s out,
myth . . . and,
the
"the
hence, l i t e r a t u r e has
i n d i v i d u a l , both e m o t i o n a l l y
l o c a l organization."17
local organization
there can be no
just
t h i s aspect
Pacey had
paramount f u n c t i o n of a l l
and
always been to engage
intellectually,
i n MacLennan's case, we
to i n c l u d e
may
i n the
expand
the n a t i o n a l o r g a n i z a t i o n .
doubt that he has
of h i s w r i t i n g .
been v e r y
And
interested in
Whereas i n 1945
Desmond
expressed doubts that a r e a l l y n a t i o n a l n o v e l
then be w r i t t e n , a year l a t e r MacLennan was
the
could
saying,
Canada i s i n search of h e r s e l f today.
She i s b a d l y i n need
o f i n t e r p r e t a t i o n , not o n l y to h e r s e l f by one of her own,
but
to the r e s t of the w o r l d as w e l l .
I t i s through the l i t e r a ture of a c o u n t r y t h a t the w o r l d comes to know h e r .
And there
are Canadians w r i t i n g i n Canada today who are e q u i p p i n g thems e l v e s f o r the t a s k . ™
Pacey had
it
had
Barometer R i s i n g to c o n s i d e r
and
evidently
to be more r e g i o n a l than n a t i o n a l i n n a t u r e , and
1
^Anatomy of C r i t i c i s m
(New
felt
MacLennan
York, Atheneum, 1966), p.
•^The Masks of God:
P r i m i t i v e Mythology
M a c m i l l a n , 1959), p. 467.
106
(Toronto,
18"Canada Between C o v e r s , " Saturday Review of L i t e r a t u r e ,
XXIX, 36 (Sept. 7, 1946), pp. 5-6
has nowhere d i s p u t e d t h i s .
to say t h a t i n Barometer
significant,
flict
later
R i s i n g "the p e r s o n a l c o n f l i c t i s
f i n a l l y , as an image o f a l a r g e r , symbolic con-
of s o c i a l
t h i s n o v e l was
f o r c e s or a t t i t u d e s . M a c L e n n a n ' s i n t e n t i n
to p o r t r a y a c o n f l i c t o f n a t i o n a l
n a t i o n a l scope; i f he was
may
Even so, Hugo McPherson was
not e n t i r e l y
importance,
s u c c e s s f u l , the cause
have been l a c k o f e x p e r i e n c e , and a comparison of
later
n o v e l s i n d i c a t e s a movement away from r e g i o n a l i s m toward, i n
fact,
the c r e a t i o n o f a n a t i o n a l image, a myth w i t h which a l l
Canadians can
identify.
Mythology and l i t e r a t u r e , as they a r e e x p r e s s i o n s o f
more than " i n g e n i o u s l y symbolized c o n c e p t s , " are a l s o more than
simply a means o f engaging the i n d i v i d u a l i n the s o c i a l
organization.
of
Myth c o n t a i n s much more than a c o n v e n t i o n a l code
s o c i a l mores or the d e f i n i t i o n of a s o c i a l norm:
i t is
a p o e t i c , supernormal imag^, c o n c e i v e d , l i k e a l l p o e t r y , i n
depth, but s u c e p t i b l e of i n t e r p r e t a t i o n on v a r i o u s l e v e l s .
The s h a l l o w e s t minds see i n i t the l o c a l scenery; the deepe s t , the f o r e g r o u n d of the v o i d ; and between are a l l the
stages o f the Way from the e t h n i c to the elementary i d e a ,
the l o c a l to the u n i v e r s a l b e i n g , which i s Everyman, as he
both knows and i s a f r a i d to know.^
The importance o f t h i s statement i n r e l a t i o n
to the develop-
ment o f MacLennan's thought cannot be o v e r s t r e s s e d .
While he
uses c l a s s i c a l myth as an e s s e n t i a l source f o r n a r r a t i v e
"The Novels o f Hugh MacLennan," p.
Campbell, P r i m i t i v e Mythology,
p.
186
472.
frameworks and background d e t a i l s , as he d e v e l o p s , he becomes
l e s s and
l e s s concerned w i t h the s u p e r f i c i a l d e c o r a t i o n s they
c o n t a i n , and more and more concerned w i t h the deeper
logical,
p h i l o s o p h i c a l and r e l i g i o u s s i g n i f i c a n c e .
to e x e m p l i f y f o r MacLennan a way
of
t h a t the t a l e o f the wandering hero,
of c e n t r a l importance
Myth comes
life.
L e a d i n g a n a l y s t s o f myth, such as Joseph
agree
psycho-
Campbell,
the quest myth, i s
i n most, i f not a l l m y t h o l o g i e s ,
s i m i l a r l y , most l i t e r a r y c r i t i c s would agree w i t h
and,
Northrop
Frye i n i d e n t i f y i n g "the c e n t r a l myth o f l i t e r a t u r e ,
in its
n a r r a t i v e a s p e c t , w i t h the quest myth."21
drawing
Campbell,
upon p s y c h o l o g i c a l and a n t h r o p o l o g i c a l d a t a , c o n s i d e r s the
quest
myth to be a " m a g n i f i c a t i o n of the formula r e p r e s e n t e d i n the
rites
of passage:
separation-initiation-return,"22
simply, a movement o f withdrawal
return.
The
o
r
j
m 0
re
(from normal s o c i e t y ) and
formula i s a t the core of man's e x p e r i e n c e o f
h i s c o n d i t i o n , and
the myth i s an i d e a l e x p r e s s i o n o f t h a t
e x p e r i e n c e because i t b e s t e x e m p l i f i e s the n a t u r a l movements
of the w o r l d man
inhabits.
s e i z e s on the fundamental
As Frye p o i n t s out, the "myth
element o f d e s i g n o f f e r e d by
--the c y c l e , as we have i t d a i l y i n the sun and
2
1 " A r c h e t y p e s , " F a b l e s , p.
nature
yearly
18
22jhe Hero w i t h a Thousand Faces
1949), p. 30.
(New
York:
Pantheon,
i n the
life,
of
s e a s o n s - - and a s s i m i l a t e s
death,
the
and .
the
r e b i r t h . "23
s t r u c t u r e man c o n t i n u a l l y
imitates
the r i t e s
structure
e
perceives
i n m i n i a t u r e the
of passage - - t h e
s t r u c t u r e of
c y c l e of days and seasons and of human l i f e
death
Th
(and r e b i r t h ) , so does the
reduced to two s t e p s .
The f i r s t
the n a t u r a l
from b i r t h
to
quest myth.
can be
s t e p of the q u e s t i n g hero
i n t o a s t a t e of withdrawal or detachment
(separation);
is
he
from the normal w o r l d , weighed down by an i n c r e a s -
i n g sense of d i s s a t i s f a c t i o n .
clarifies
his
ured i n the
difficulties,
process
u r a t i o n , he f i n d s
able
As
coming of
The p a t t e r n o f the myth, as has been mentioned,
retreats
of
of the e x t e r n a l w o r l d and w i t h i n h i m s e l f .
the c y c l i c s t r u c t u r e of
age--
to the human c y c l e
. . Jby analogyj
quest myth i s
i n the motions
it
In h i s
eradicates
(initiation).
peace from h i s
to a c c o m p l i s h the
the
them, and i s
Ideally,
previous
second s t e p ,
the normal w o r l d to teach
detached s t a t e ,
the hero
transfig-
through
transfig-
t r o u b l e s and
is
to r e t u r n r e v i t a l i z e d
l e s s o n he has l e a r n e d of
renewal of a balanced p e r s o n a l i t y and p o s i t i v e l y
to
the
directed
life.
In o t h e r words,
the hero breaks away from h i s o r d i n a r y l i f e ,
suffers
trials
various
of h i m s e l f - -
--thereby gaining increased
and r e t u r n s to put t h i s
23"Myth, F i c t i o n ,
knowledge
self-knowledge
and D i s p l a c e m e n t , " F a b l e s ,
p.
to use
32.
in
r e s t o r i n g and m a i n t a i n i n g balance and o r d e r i n s o c i e t y .
Mythology
and l i t e r a t u r e o f a l l ages and a l l c u l t u r e s
are f u l l o f t a l e s o f the q u e s t i n g h e r o .
The f a m i l i a r
myths abound i n examples, the t a l e s o f Prometheus,
Perseus, and Odysseus to name o n l y a few.
Quest
Greek
Theseus,
stories
also
c o n s t i t u t e a major p a r t o f the Roman (e.g., Aeneid) and -s i g n i f i c a n t l y , c o n s i d e r i n g MacLennan's S c o t t i s h
Celtic
(e.g., C u c h a l a i n ) m y t h o l o g i e s .
heritage-
Primary to t h i s
study,
however, i s Homer's Odyssey, f o r there a r e numerous e x p l i c i t
p a r a l l e l s w i t h Homer's e p i c quest t a l e i n MacLennan's work.
The n a r r a t i v e s t r u c t u r e o f the Odyssey i s t y p i c a l o f
the quest s t o r y , b e i n g a c y c l i c a l
cycle.
form based on the n a t u r a l
I t i s o f t h a t type o f quest c a l l e d
"centripetal,"
t h a t i s , a quest to reach home, the o r i g i n o f the j o u r n e y .
Having departed from h i s home, I t h a c a , and gone to do b a t t l e
a t Troy (recounted i n the I l i a d ) ,
Odysseus s e t s o f f to r e t u r n
to I t h a c a but encounters g r e a t d i f f i c u l t i e s ,
s u f f e r , b a r r i e r s he must overcome
;
t r i a l s he must
He i s withdrawn from the
normal world a l l the way to the dark and m y s t e r i o u s
w o r l d , but f i n a l l y
succeeds
i n h i s endeavours,
home and i s r e u n i t e d w i t h h i s w i f e and son.
under-
regains h i s
The p a t t e r n o f the
n a r r a t i v e i s s i m i l a r to t h a t o f many o t h e r q u e s t s , but t h i s
myth c o n t a i n s c e r t a i n p e c u l i a r f e a t u r e s which s p e c i f i c a l l y r e c u r
i n MacLennan's n o v e l s .
P r e c e d i n g the s t o r y , there i s a l o n g ,
b i t t e r and p a r t i c u l a r l y d e v a s t a t i n g war between two major powers
MacLennan draws on t h i s f o r both h i s t o r i c a l and m e t a p h o r i c a l
parallels.
During the s t o r y , s u i t o r s tempt the hero's w i f e
to be u n f a i t h f u l and f o r s a k e h i s memory, w h i l e the hero's son
emerges as one a b l e l a t e r
f a t h e r ' s realm:
consideration.
the hero
to assume r e s p o n s i b l e command o f h i s
t h i s p a t t e r n i s used i n a l l the n o v e l s under
After
the s t o r y , f u r t h e r t r i a l s a r e i n s t o r e f o r
( p r o p h e s i e d by the ghost o f T e i r e s i a s ) :
n o v e l s end on such a p r o p h e t i c n o t e .
a l l three
And another
important
f a c t o r r e l a t i n g the Odyssey and MacLennan's n o v e l s i s the nature
of the c h a r a c t e r s .
As the quest myth i s , a f t e r a l l ,
the j o u r n e y o f a man,
who i s i n p a r t c o n t r o l l e d by c i r c u m s t a n c e s and i n p a r t
controls
them, the c h a r a c t e r o f Odysseus i s o f extreme importance
development o f the n a r r a t i v e .
to the
H i s nature i s somewhat a m b i v a l e n t :
a t times he i s g e n t l e , c o o l and serene, a t o t h e r s v i o l e n t and
ferocious
(when j u s t i c e must be done).
He i s , i n f a c t , v e r y
s i m i l a r i n c h a r a c t e r to h i s patron goddess, Athene, the goddess
of wisdom and prudent w a r f a r e , a l t h o u g h Odysseus i s an e m i n e n t l y
masculine example o f the q u a l i t i e s
they share.
The G r e c i a n
S t o i c s and the E p i c u r e a n Romans, such as Horace, c o n s i d e r e d
Odysseus a noble example o f manly v i r t u e .
commentators n o t i c e d
They and o t h e r a n c i e n t
that "Odysseus was the f i r s t
Greek to adopt
the p r i n c i p l e o f 'Nothing i n e x c e s s , which w i t h i t s complementary
1
p r i n c i p l e o f 'Know t h y s e l f
1
produced
so much o f what was b e s t i n
- 16. -
Greek thought and a r t . " ^
a n i s t s can be expected
and
What was important
to these a n c i e n t hum-
to have some a p p e a l to modern
humanists,
t h i s i s c e r t a i n l y the case w i t h MacLennan.
L i k e A l f r e d , L o r d Tennyson, a V i c t o r i a n humanist who was
drawn to the Odyssey ("Ulysses", 1842; "To U l y s s e s " , 1888) and a
man
w i t h whom MacLennan has some a f f i n i t y ,
the Canadian has a
sympathy w i t h the Odysseus f i g u r e t h a t seems to become a matter
of s e l f - i d e n t i f i c a t i o n .
As o f t e n happens when an author works
out i n h i s w r i t i n g s what amounts to an i n t e n s e emotional
experience,
both the w r i t e r h i m s e l f and h i s chosen hero-symbol may be
d r a s t i c a l l y changed. F o r the w r i t e r i t c a n be a means o f s e l f d i s c o v e r y , s e l f encouragement, and s e l f - r e a l i z a t i o n .
F o r the
m y t h i c a l hero who i s the p a r t n e r o f t h i s i m a g i n a t i v e empathy,
the e f f e c t may be an e n t i r e l y new mutation i n h i s e v o l u t i o n . 2 5
These " d r a s t i c changes", however, a r e g e n e r a l l y c o n f i n e d to the
more s u p e r f i c i a l a s p e c t s o f the f i g u r e and h i s journey, and
r a r e l y have any a p p r e c i a b l e e f f e c t on the broader o u t l i n e s o f the
quest hero o r the b a s i c p a t t e r n o f the myth.
MacLennan n e g l e c t s
the shrewd and cunning s i d e o f Odysseus' nature and a c c e n t u a t e s
the g e n t l e and u n d e r s t a n d i n g
stubborn single-mindedness,
side.
He a l s o s t r e s s e s
Odysseus'
o c c a s i o n a l l y a l t e r i n g i t to a b l i n d
and o b s e s s i v e , i f n a i v e and i d e a l i s t i c , w i l l
to do the r i g h t
thing.
^W. B. S t a n f o r d , The U l y s s e s Theme (Oxford:
B l a c k w e l l and Mott, 1963), p. 35
2
2 5
Ibid.,
p. 6
Basil,
-
17.
-
Another of Homer's c h a r a c t e r s who
i n MacLennan's n o v e l s
counterpart
i s Odysseus' w i f e , Penelope.
d e p i c t s her as g e n t l e but
Homer
s t r o n g , r e t i c e n t but f i r m , and
a l l wise, wise w i t h an i n t e l l i g e n c e and
not
has\lear
seek s e l f - g r a t i f i c a t i o n .
understanding
above
which
P a t i e n t l y she awaits her husband's
r e t u r n , f e n d i n g o f f the p e r s i s t e n t s u i t o r s w i t h one
managing her much-disturbed household w i t h
hand,
the o t h e r .
MacLennan
g e n e r a l l y h a n d l e s t h i s b a s i c p i c t u r e of her c h a r a c t e r w i t h
modification.
found
left
He
little
deals s i m i l a r l y with a d d i t i o n a l characters
i n the Odyssey.
Eumaeus, Odysseus' f a i t h f u l
servant,
i n I t h a c a d u r i n g the journey but i n s t r u m e n t a l i n r e - i n s t a t i n g
the hero to h i s r i g h t f u l
p o s i t i o n , appears i n v a r i o u s
So does Telemachus, the hero's son,
his
do
f a i t h f u l and
obedient
to
strong
and
f a t h e r ' s wishes, y e t independent enough to be
self-reliant
and h o l d promise f o r the f u t u r e .
Penelope - - a r r o g a n t ,
numerous g u i s e s .
and maiden-- who
h e l p him
to be
greedy and
The
suitors
s e l f i s h - - are presented
C i r c e , Calypso
and Nausicaa
appear under many names.
And
Olympian a n t a g o n i s t , Poseidon,
earth-shaker
in
eventually
f i n a l l y , not
seen as human c h a r a c t e r s i n MacLennan's n o v e l s
i n e x o r a b l e f o r c e s , are the gods:
but
as
Odysseus' c h i e f
and
l o r d of the
Odysseus' c h i e f a i d , Athene, patron of wisdom and w a r f a r e ;
beyond even these,
of
- - w i t c h , nymph
both h i n d e r Odysseus i n h i s quest and
on h i s way,
invisible,
forms.
sea;
and
that i n e l u c t a b l e f o r c e to which even the gods
themselves must submit, d i v i n e d e s t i n y , m o i r a , p e r s o n i f i e d as
Fate.
-
18.
-
Other t h i n g s i n Homer's e p i c a l s o appear i n MacLennan's
work; f o r example, both w r i t e r s use the sea as a major image.
Homer's sea i s a t once dangerous and b e n e f i c i a l :
i t carries
Odysseus away from home, f r u s t r a t i n g h i s r e t u r n , k i l l i n g h i s
men and t h r e a t e n i n g him; but e v e n t u a l l y i t c a r r i e s him home a
g r e a t e r man than he was b e f o r e .
this very
little.
MacLennan's sea d i f f e r s
I n Homer's sea there a r e i s l a n d s o f r e f u g e ,
a g a i n u s u a l l y o f an ambivalent n a t u r e :
the L o t o s - e a t e r s ,
there i s the land o f
p a r a d i s a l but s e l f - d e f e a t i n g ; C i r c e ' s i s l a n d ,
t h r e a t e n i n g y e t h e l p f u l ; Calypso's
but
from
i s l a n d , a s e n s u a l Eden
l a c k i n g the rewards o f community, o f s o c i e t y ; and f i n a l l y
I t h a c a i t s e l f , r e p r e s e n t i n g home and f a m i l y , the o n l y
place
where Odysseus can f i n d l a s t i n g contentment.
I n the world o f
MacLennan's n o v e l s
These images a r e
such i s l a n d s a l s o appear.
o n l y two o f numerous
The world
literature,
parallels.
o f the Odyssey, the whole world
i s woven i n t o MacLennan's world
of c l a s s i c a l
so t i g h t l y
that
the two w o r l d s , c l a s s i c a l and modern, sometimes become i n d i s tinguishable.
The d i v i d i n g
i s e x t r e m e l y hard
to draw.
l i n e between myth and s o c i a l r e a l i s m
Although MacLennan w r i t e s i n a
" r e a l i s t i c " mode, the e x p l i c i t borrowings from myth f o r the
purposes o f s t r u c t u r i n g and c h a r a c t e r i z a t i o n , and the e x p r e s s i o n
of i d e a l s drawn from c l a s s i c a l
thought, combined w i t h a d i s t i n c t
sense o f the p r e t e r n a t u r a l , pervade the n o v e l s w i t h an atmosphere
that i s not " r e a l i s t i c " ,
an atmosphere that says t h i s i s myth.
Hugh MacLennan i s a mythmaker, a w r i t e r composing f o r
and
h i s readers a pattern
i n h i s s o c i e t y and
i n the
Seen as a whole, the
that defines
philosophy.
a basic c o n f l i c t
i n d i v i d u a l s who
comprise t h i s
p a t t e r n a l s o p r o v i d e s an e v e n t u a l
to t h a t c o n f l i c t , a r e s o l u t i o n that
himself
both
society.
resolution
i s f i r m l y set i n c l a s s i c a l
Chapter Two:
Barometer R i s i n g : The N a t i o n a l Romance
Hugh MacLennan's f i r s t n o v e l , Barometer R i s i n g , i s
explicitly
begins
p a t t e r n e d on Homer's Odyssey.
Greek e p i c
i n media r e s , Odysseus r e t u r n i n g to I t h a c a
j o u r n e y i n g f o r nine years
R i s i n g a l s o begins
the quest,
The
The
from the war
a t Troy.
Barometer
i n media r e s , even c l o s e r to the c l i m a x
f o r N e i l Macrae has
the F i r s t World War
of
a l r e a d y come back to H a l i f a x .
i d e n t i f i c a t i o n of I t h a c a w i t h H a l i f a x and
an important
after
i s c l e a r l y intended.
the T r o j a n w i t h
A l s o , i n both n a r r a t i v e s ,
f e a t u r e of the q u e s t . i s as y e t unconcluded; Odysseus
must d e a l w i t h
the s u i t o r s who
C o l o n e l Wain and h i s a l l i e s
v a s t l y outnumber him,
Neil
has
to overcome.
C o l o n e l G e o f f r e y Wain, an i s o l a t e d example of N e i l ' s
enemies, i s "an ambitious
In t h i s he
man
c o n f i d e n t i n h i s own
i s not u n l i k e N e i l , w i t h
N e i l ' s ambition
f o r h i s f e l l o w man.
possibilities"
power and
confidence
from the past and
(66).
rejoin
g l o r y without
the
regard
A g a i n not u n l i k e N e i l , Wain i s "pervaded
by a q u i e t and unquestioned
pulled a d r i f t
the d i f f e r e n c e t h a t , where
i s p r i m a r i l y to c l e a r h i s name and
community, Wain seeks p e r s o n a l
ability."!
But
t h a t the present
that h i s f u t u r e h e l d u n l i m i t e d
the v i s i o n s the two men
f u t u r e are r a d i c a l l y d i s s i m i l a r .
had
have of
the
Wain e n v i s i o n s a m i l i t a n t ,
••-Hugh MacLennan, Barometer R i s i n g (Toronto: M c C l e l l a n d &
Stewart, 1958), p. 27.
A l l subsequent q u o t a t i o n s from the
n o v e l are from t h i s e d i t i o n and are f o l l o w e d by page r e f e r e n c e s
i n parentheses.
regimented, a u t h o r i t a r i a n s o c i e t y c e n t e r e d on England, a
and
d i f f e r e n t k i n d of Empire more a l o n g r i g i d
f a c t , he
foresees a f a s c i s t s t a t e .
i s c l e a r l y opposed to Wain's; he
Roman l i n e s .
sees an independent n a t i o n
gone b e f o r e .
N e i l i s an i d e a l i s t i c democrat, Wain i s a s e l f i s h ,
a u t o c r a t , c o l d and a r r o g a n t , a l t h o u g h
and
there i s a
s u i t o r s of the Odyssey.
i n d i f f e r e n t power he r a d i a t e d
proudly
He has
Too
put
from
Here l i e s h i s a f f i n i t y w i t h
the
c o n f i d e n t of t h e i r power, too
of t h e i r i n e v i t a b l e v i c t o r y , both
f a t e by
grasping
f o r c e to much e v i d e n t use, a p a r t
maintaining h i s inheritance.
Where
"discrepancy
the mediocre r e c o r d of h i s achievement" (26).
n e i t h e r h i s a b i l i t y nor
In
N e i l ' s v i s i o n i s h a z i e r but
c r e a t i n g a f r e e s o c i e t y s u p e r i o r to what has
between the sense of r u t h l e s s and
new
sure
the s u i t o r s and Wain tempt
swaggering through t h e i r worlds,
unaware t h a t
t h e i r mistaken b e l i e f s are s e l f - d e f e a t i n g . As h i s name i m p l i e s ,
C o l o n e l Wain i s d e s t i n e d to wane.
Because of the d i s p a r i t y , apparent and
c o n t r o l of the s i t u a t i o n e x e r t e d by N e i l
(the s u i t o r s ) ,
r e a l , between the
(Odysseus) and Wain
the hero must c o n s i d e r d i s c r e t i o n the b e t t e r
p a r t of v a l o u r and
remain hidden.
L i k e Odysseus, N e i l
appears i n h i s n a t i v e community i n a g u i s e i n f e r i o r
rightful
position:
first
to h i s
Odysseus i s dressed as a beggar; N e i l
l i k e a tramp, p o o r l y dressed and
i n need o f a shave, " i n England
he would have been l a b e l l e d a gentleman who
Circumstances keep N e i l ,
looks
had
l o s t c a s t e " (3).
l i k e Odysseus, a s t r a n g e r i s o l a t e d i n a
- 22. -
community he knows w e l l ,
" r e c o g n i z e d by no-one" ( 5 ) .
i s o l a t i o n has been h i s l o t s i n c e he departed from
the war,
f o r "army r o u t i n e had
existence
(93).
to
. . .
This
the scene
g i v e n p l a c e to a phantasmal
i n which n o t h i n g had been r e a l but
In terms of the Homeric work, the i s o l a t e d
loneliness"
l i f e i s equal
the b u l k o f Odysseus' j o u r n e y , t h a t time f o l l o w i n g the T r o j a n
War,
and much o f Odysseus' e x i s t e n c e i s l i t e r a l l y
specifically
t h a t spent
i n the underworld.
"phantasmal,"
This c l e a r l y
connects
w i t h N e i l ' s f e e l i n g t h a t "he might as w e l l be dead as the
he was,
s i n c e the c h i e f l o s s i n death was
communicate" (45).
cannot
He
is s t i l l
the a b i l i t y
to
i n a s t a t e of detachment
and
i n the p l a c e he knew as home" ( 7 ) , u n t i l he has
a b l e "to square
a time N e i l
some a c c o u n t s "
(108), as he
says he must.
i s Penelope who
differs
first
r e c o g n i z e s N e i l , and here
from the e p i c , where i t i s Telemachus who
father,
to
been
For
i s f o r c e d to w a i t h e l p l e s s l y and watch, "conscious of
wanting to get back to Penelope more than a n y t h i n g e l s e "
his
way
f u l f i l l h i s "simple d e s i r e f o r an acknowledged r i g h t
e x i s t here
It
of
(199).
the n o v e l
first
recognizes
Odysseus.
Penelope Wain shares many q u a l i t i e s w i t h her model, Homer's
wise Penelope.
She has an i n n e r c o o l n e s s , "a m e r c i f u l power
w i t h i n h e r s e l f t h a t enabled her to s p i l l c o o l water over her
b r a i n and make i t l u c i d
i n moments of c r i s i s "
Odysseus' w i f e a c t s w e l l a t c r i t i c a l
moments.
(85), and
Both
certainly
Penelopes
have a s e r e n i t y t h a t a l l o w s them to cope w i t h f r u s t r a t i o n , Homer's
-.23.
w i t h the irksome
f a t h e r and
-
s u i t o r s , MacLennan's w i t h her
i n s u f f e r a b l e aunt, M a r i a .
domineering
Furthermore,
MacLennan's
words d e s c r i b i n g Penny Wain might j u s t as e a s i l y be used
d e s c r i b e her Homeric c o u n t e r p a r t :
absorbed
and
and
i n repose
to
"her face seemed
p r i v a t e , " w h i l e i n c o n v e r s a t i o n "her face opened
d i s c l o s e d a sympathetic
and comprehensive mind" (10).
These pensive and c o n t r o l l e d minds, however, are not f o r e v e r
serene;
the c o n s t a n t a s s a u l t s of the s u i t o r s have opened a
c h i n k i n Penelope's
armour and have s l i g h t l y weakened her r e s o l v e ,
w h i l e , b e f o r e N e i l ' s appearance, Penny has an " i n c r e a s i n g
of her v u l n e r a b i l i t y "
fact
(20).
T h i s does not d e t r a c t from
sense
the
t h a t both women have s u c c e s s f u l l y kept the s u i t o r s f o r
t h e i r a f f e c t i o n s a t bay,
with her ship design.
Penelope w i t h her famous loom, Penny
And
this a b i l i t y
to cope w i t h
an
e x t r a o r d i n a r y s i t u a t i o n i s d o u b t l e s s what causes Angus Murray to
compliment Penny by c a l l i n g her
finally
to say,
" p r e t t y shrewd" (17), and
"Wise Penelope!
Neil
That's what Odysseus s a i d to
\
h i s w i f e when he got home" (219).
The r o l e of Eumaeus, Odysseus' f a i t h f u l
p l a y e d i n Barometer R i s i n g by A l e c MacKenzie.
all
life
t h a t i s good - - l o y a l t y , honesty,
harmony w i t h n a t u r e :
He
i s a man
is
Alec represents
p a t i e n c e - - i n the o l d
of Nova S c o t i a , j u s t as Eumaeus does i n I t h a c a .
come from the l a n d , and has
one.
swineherd,
A l e c has
l e a r n e d h i s v a l u e s by working i n
h i s has been a hard
of the domestic
l i f e but a
fulfilling
breed, as N e i l r e c o g n i z e s , f o r
- 24.
"his
walk had
-
the melancholy rhythm of a ruminant a n i m a l "
"he h e l d the words i n h i s mouth as
(46).
L i k e Eumaeus, A l e c
i s not
exhibits
depend on i n t e l l i g e n c e , and
i n r e - i n s t a t i n g N e i l (Odysseus) to h i s
position.
As N e i l n o t e s , "Alec and he
r o o t s ; now
i t was
almost as
cud"
o v e r l y i n t e l l i g e n t but
those homely v i r t u e s which do not
i s instrumental
though they were a
and
rightful
stemmed from the same
i f A l e c were about to h e l p
him
v i n d i c a t e h i s f a t h e r f o r years of h u m i l i a t i o n s u f f e r e d a t
hands of the Wains" (131).
N e i l i s to r e s t o r e h i s
honour, as Odysseus r e s t o r e s
N e i l himself
on a quest.
t h a t of L a e r t e s
sometimes r e c o g n i z e s
When he
i s most alone and
"a d i s t o r t e d image of h i m s e l f
A f t e r the e x p l o s i o n ,
for
revenge on C o l o n e l Wain, he
i n h i s e x i l e was
in
had
a f t e r he has
the
despondent, he
never saw
recognizes
f u t u r e he would always be a b l e
best a n a l y s t o f h i s own
through Penny Wain and
i n the
quest
many myriads
the
light"
(88).
t h a t the
"bitterness
to t e l l h i m s e l f
past"
(200).
that
N e i l i s not
him
he
the
s i t u a t i o n , however, f o r i t i s l a r g e l y
Angus Murray t h a t MacLennan makes e x p l i c i t
i n d i c a t e s h i s place
in
pattern.
Penny t e l l s us
and
Lilliput
No m a t t e r what happened to
statements about N e i l ' s p e r s o n a l i t y and
the
has
worked o f f h i s v i o l e n t d e s i r e
quite extinguished.
s u r v i v e d worse t h i n g s
Odyssey.
h i s r o l e as a wanderer
as a G u l l i v e r i n t h i s
swarmed underneath and
the
father's
i n the
wrenching the r o o f s o f f houses to d i s c o v e r how
of creatures
he
t h a t N e i l i s "impetuous, . . . e x p l o s i v e
o b l i v i o u s to what other
people might be
t h i n k i n g " (113).
Here,
- 25.
MacLennan i s a c c e n t u a t i n g the v i o l e n t s i d e o f the Odysseus
f i g u r e ' s n a t u r e , because
i t s u i t s h i s purpose
to do so. I f
N e i l were as shrewd as Odysseus, and had h i s f o r e s i g h t , he would
know e x a c t l y what he was g o i n g to do and where i t would
him.
T h i s , MacLennan does n o t d e s i r e , f o r he wishes
h i s hero's f u t u r e i n doubt a t the end o f the n o v e l .
lead
to leave
N e i l must
be the man t h a t Penny knows i s " c a r e l e s s and impetuous and
o v e r - c o n f i d e n t o f h i s own a b i l i t y
to shape the w o r l d a c c o r d i n g
to h i s own d e s i g n " (106), f o r he r e p r e s e n t s Canada?s f u t u r e .
Penny may be bothered a l i t t l e by h i s b l i n d i d e a l i s m , but she
a l s o sees him as "the o n l y eager human b e i n g she had ever
known" (106), and she i s drawn to t h i s v i t a l ,
It
positive
eagerness.
i s "wise" Penelope who f i n a l l y makes c l e a r the b a s i c h e r o i c
quality i n Neil:
"By nature he would f i g h t
a c h i e v e a human s i g n i f i c a n c e
i n d e f i n i t e l y to
i n an age where the products o f
human i n g e n u i t y make mockery o f the men who had c r e a t e d them.
He would f i g h t because
courage"
(216).
n o t h i n g y e t had been too b i g f o r h i s
S i m i l a r l y , Angus t e l l s us much o f the h e r o ,
and h i s p l a c e i n the quest p a t t e r n when he speaks
Neil
of himself:
So, l i k e the wanderer, the sun gone down, darkness be over me,
my r e s t a stone - - t h a t ' s your Nova S c o t i a n , i f you've the
eye to see i t .
Wanderers. Looking a l l over the c o n t i n e n t f o r
a future.
But they always come back.
That's the p o i n t to
remember, they always come back to the r o o t s . ( 1 3 6 )
Nova S c o t i a n s --and the c u l t u r e h e r o , N e i l Macrae, e p i t o m i z e s
Nova S c o t i a n s - - f o l l o w the path o f the c e n t r i p e t a l quest back
to t h e i r o r i g i n s .
This p a t t e r n r e c u r s t r a g i c a l l y i n Each Man's S_
- 26. -
but i n t h i s n o v e l the c y c l e i s comic, as Angus p o i n t s out when
he
says, "I've seen a man t h a t ' s r i s e n from the dead" (137).
MacLennan has begun to blend the c l a s s i c a l and the C h r i s t i a n :
N e i l Macrae has become n o t o n l y an Odyssean c u l t u r e hero, but
something o f a messiah as w e l l .
N e i l i s a s o c i a l messiah r a t h e r than a r e l i g i o u s one, and,
although
the C h r i s t i a n messiah i s c o n v e n t i o n a l l y a s s o c i a t e d
w i t h a lamb, N e i l
i s a s s o c i a t e d with o t h e r a n i m a l s .
h i s r e - i n s t a t e m e n t , he imagines
Before
h i m s e l f as "a f i s h on the end
of a hook" ( 7 ) , and t h i s image o f the trapped animal
i s picked
>
up l a t e r when Penny i s t h i n k i n g o f N e i l ' s s i t u a t i o n .
As she
t h i n k s , h e r a t t e n t i o n i s r e p e a t e d l y drawn to a c a t which "had
finally
t a n g l e d h i m s e l f i n e x t r i c a b l y i n the b a l l o f wool, and
w i t h b a f f l e d and desperate
d i g n i t y was t r y i n g to get f r e e "
L a t e r , he " r o l l e d over, c l a w i n g f r a n t i c a l l y .
(106).
Whenever he e x t r i c a t e d
h i m s e l f from one loop he i n v o l v e d h i m s e l f i n a n o t h e r "
(107).
This may remind the reader o f a r e f e r e n c e much e a r l i e r i n the
n o v e l to N e i l ' s b e i n g l i k e an "animal bunched f o r a s p r i n g " ( 2 ) .
The animal b e s t known f o r bunching
itself
of the c a t f a m i l y ( l i o n s and t i g e r s ) .
i s the c a t , o r members
These animals have
such
noble c a r r i a g e and a r e so e x p r e s s i v e o f power and s t r e n g t h both
m a n i f e s t and h i d d e n
heroes.
t h a t they a r e t r a d i t i o n a l l y a s s o c i a t e d w i t h
N e i l i s seen as a c a t , which, though domestic, has an
independent,
unmanageable n a t u r e .
He may be trapped, but t h a t
w i l l not s t o p h i s f i g h t i n g to get f r e e .
As Northrop Frye i n d i c a t e s ,
In the comic v i s i o n the animal w o r l d i s a community of dome s t i c a t e d a n i m a l s , u s u a l l y a f l o c k o f sheep, or a lamb, or
one o f the g e n t l e r b i r d s , u s u a l l y a dove.
The a r c h e t y p e o f
p a s t o r a l images.
I n the t r a g i c v i s i o n the animal w o r l d i s
seen i n terms o f b e a s t s and b i r d s of prey, wolves, v u l t u r e s ,
s e r p e n t s , dragons and the l i k e . 2
Such a d i v i s i o n o f animal imagery does appear i n Barometer
Rising.
A l e c MacKenzie
i s i d e n t i f i e d w i t h a domestic a n i m a l ,
a "ruminant a n i m a l " which chews i t s cud.
the
While N e i l
represents
more a c t i v e a s p e c t o f the comic v i s i o n i n the novel, A l e c
r e p r e s e n t s the more g e n t l e .
vision,
too.
There i s , o f c o u r s e , a t r a g i c
N e i l speaks o f "the hyenas
a r o u n d " (110) Penny, and, a f t e r
o f the f a m i l y p r o w l i n g
the e x p l o s i o n , he i s i r r i t a t e d
by the f a l l i n g snow, f o r i t i s "as though the f l a k e s had been a
swarm o f f l i e s "
(197).
These images
of c a r r i o n - e a t e r s
circling
a dying or dead animal h e l p to c r e a t e a mood o f death, i m p l y i n g
a : n o r t a l l y wounded c i t y , a d y i n g or dead s o c i e t y .
This had
been h i n t e d a t b e f o r e i n N e i l ' s f e e l i n g t h a t , i f he t o r e the
r o o f s from the c i t y houses, he ntfoiit d i s c o v e r myriads o f c r e a t u r e s
swarming underneath
(88).
The i m p r e s s i o n i s o f maggots or
te:rmites e a t i n g a t a r o t t e n c o r e .
Barometer
Animal imagery i s important i n
R i s i n g , but n a t u r e imagery i s o f even g r e a t e r importance.
I t i s through images
o f n a t u r e t h a t MacLennan p o r t r a y s
many o f the opposing f o r c e s a t work i n the n o v e l .
"Archetypes o f L i t e r a t u r e , " F a b l e s , pp.
Particularly
20-21
-
28.
-
important are images o f water - - s p r i n g s , r i v e r s , and the sea.
These waters a r e a t work both o u t s i d e and
lor Neil,
i n s i d e the c h a r a c t e r s ,
the sea can be an image o f i s o l a t i o n , and i t takes
o n l y a t h i n breeze from the sea to make "him f e e l
s o l i t a r y " (3).
Penny, s i t t i n g a l o n e , f e e l s
entirely
"as though a stone
had been plunged i n t o the pool o f h e r mind u n t i l her memories
were s u r g i n g l i k e
t r o u b l e d w a t e r s " and
and a sense o f l o s s " (14).
"she ached w i t h
But the waters are e m o t i o n a l l y
ambivalent, f o r the memories become p l e a s a n t ones and
recollects
loneliness
t h a t "as she walked
she
alone i t had been p o s s i b l e to
imagine an aeon o f t r a n q u i l l i t y broadening out l i k e a sea
under the s k y " (14).
W.
H. Auden has made an i n t e r e s t i n g
and
u s e f u l a n a l y s i s o f t h i s type o f image, and concludes t h a t
the
"Sky as c o n t r a s t e d w i t h water
Na.ture."
3
peace may
[equals}
Penny's t r a n q u i l l i t y o f sea under sky suggests
that
be found when s p i r i t and nature are i n harmony.
But
the waters are r a r e l y , i f e v e r , s t i l l .
r e c o l l e c t i o n of t r a n q u i l l i t y ,
"how
S p i r i t as c o n t r a s t e d w i t h
Shortly a f t e r her
Penny q u i v e r s a t the thought o f
h e l p l e s s h e r e x i s t e n c e had been i n the c u r r e n t o f f o r c e s
she had been a b l e n e i t h e r to p r e d i c t nor c o n t r o l " (15).
A
sense o f c u r r e n t s or t i d e s , u n c o n t r o l l a b l e , sometimes a p p e a r i n g
m a l i g n a n t , sometimes benign, o f t e n b l i n d and m i n d l e s s , i s v e r y
s t r o n g throughout
the n o v e l .
The Enchafed F l o o d (New
Young Roddie Wain, watching
York:
Random House, 1950),
the
p.
75.
29.
troop s h i p Olympic
go h u l l - d o w n over the h o r i z o n , suddenly
feels
empty and a l o n e .
The waves b r e a k i n g l i g h t l y on the smooth
iStones o f the shore were l i k e an u n e a r t h l y l a u g h t e r , and
t h e i r sound was c o n s t a n t and a l l - p e r v a d i n g , w i p i n g out the
r e a l i t y o f what he had j u s t seen and f i l l i n g h i s mind w i t h
an unreasonable sense of disenchantment. (56)
Roddie has been u n s e t t l e d by a t a s t e o f the i n e x o r a b l e powers
of n a t u r e , the slow, l e v e l l i n g
the mighty
waters h o l d
f o r c e s o f change to which
Olympic must e v e n t u a l l y f a l l .
peace,
too.
But the
of the room, the t a b l e s and c h a i r s and
and
"the w a l l s
the p i c t u r e o f the
the sea, f l o w i n g a g a i n s t h i s e y e b a l l s
ebbing away w i t h a motion
but h i s thoughts, and
And
shifting
To the drunken Angus Murray, t i r e d
a f r a i d o f a r e a l i t y which appears u g l y and f u t i l e ,
dead duck surged l i k e
even
and
so steady i t d e s t r o y e d e v e r y t h i n g
from those i t removed the p a i n " (134).
to Penny, a f t e r h e r eye o p e r a t i o n , when the e x p l o d i n g ,
r a p i d l y changing w o r l d seems to have become too much to bear,
"through the w e l l i n g waters
. . .
no
l o n g e r seemed o f much importance"
has become as N e i l now
now,
o f h e r e x h a u s t i o n . . . the
(175-76).
future
Penny
has, concerned o n l y w i t h the here
the f i g h t a t hand.
and
By the time she and N e i l s e t o f f t o g e t h e r
a.: the end o f the n o v e l , she i s ready to go on r e g a r d l e s s , to
accept that
"titanic
"she was
forces"
i n the c u r r e n t now"
(216).
(215), i n the g r i p of
The b a s i c o p p o s i t i o n i m p l i e d
and
s t a t e d i n these images i s one o f f l u x to s t a s i s , o f motion
r e s t , and MacLennan's sympathies
S i m i l a r o p p o s i t i o n s appear
seem to be w i t h the
to
flux.
i n o t h e r n a t u r e images, and
images of
- 30.
the g e n e r a l
setting.
I t becomes e v i d e n t
novel
-
that there
made, and there
i n the v e r y f i r s t
paragraph o f
the
i s an o p p o s i t i o n between nature and the manis a strong suggestion,
between l i g h t and d a r k n e s s .
too,
o f an o p p o s i t i o n
The n a r r a t o r s a y s ,
"In the west
the w i n t e r sky was b r i l l i a n t and c l o u d s massing under the
sun
were t a k i n g on c o l o u r , but smoke hung low i n the s t r e e t s "
The l i g h t - d a r k n e s s o p p o s i t i o n becomes s t r o n g e r when N e i l
(1).
is
seen l o o k i n g west to watch the s u n s e t , a "shedding b l a z e o f
crowning the c o n t i n e n t "
east;
(4),
w h i l e darkness moves
i n from the
" i t s p i l l e d over from the l a n d and lapped the
massive
s i d e s of the g r a v i n g - d o c k and the h u l l s of v e s s e l s r i d i n g
at
anchor;
.
i t advanced westward from the h i d d e n sea;
was behind i t " ( 9 ) .
to the c i t y ;
of
s h i p y a r d s can be seen "the
long s k e l e t o n
time a s s o c i a t e d
Once a g a i n
this
Significantly,
sunsets are g l o r i o u s l y p o s i t i v e
the
is
there
with darkness.
to C o l o n e l Wain they seem n e g a t i v e .
w i t h a vague sense of d i s t a s t e
attention
In the Wain
i s a sense o f d e a t h ,
and N e i l Macrae,
fog
of a s h i p under c o n s t r u c t i o n ,
k e e l b u r i e d i n the n i g h t " ( 9 ) .
while
.
the s u r r o u n d i n g c o u n t r y s i d e
minimized and d r i v e n inward to the man-made.
l y i n g with i t s
and .
The e n c r o a c h i n g darkness f o r c e s
consciousness
glory
to the n a r r a t o r
He notes
"glow o f sunset r e e k i n g over
the sheds and s p i l l i n g on the f l a t water o f the h a r b o u r "
(62).
One reason f o r Wain's d i s t a s t e may be due to MacLennan's use
sunsets to appear p r o p h e t i c of change.
Wain, of c o u r s e ,
of
stands
for
the s t a t u s quo.
The
the Tuesday evening
d e s c r i b e s Bedford
evening
Wain watches the sunset
p r i o r to the e x p l o s i o n , the n a r r a t o r
B a s i n as
"walled by d a r k n e s s . " The
l i g h t s of the s h i p s i n the B a s i n f l i c k e r
f i r e f l i e s motionless
is
"reeking,
i n the v o i d . "
l i k e a scene p r i o r to c r e a t i o n .
The
riding
" l i k e a swarm o f
dark, m o t i o n l e s s
void
Meanwhile, " i n the f a r west
t a e r e remained, l i k e a t i n y i s l a n d b u r n i n g w i t h a d i s t a n t f i r e ,
a s l i v e r of c l o u d s t i l l
sun"
.
(75).
A little
r e f l e c t i n g the glow from the
l a t e r , N e i l n o t i c e s the
. . to the ground . . . and
shook l o o s e one
their d r i f t
by one
to the s e a " (79).
a motion toward^ the e a s t ,
"darkness descended
s p l i n t e r e d clouds
from the
i n the west
t u r m o i l of the sunset
the e a r t h was
face of the waters.
was
And
And
began
toward the dark v o i d of Bedford
without
the face of the deep.
and
S p l i n t e r s of l i g h t have begun
The whole scene i s pervaded by a sense of imminent
"^nd
sunken
form, and v o i d ; and
Basin.
genesis:
darkness was
upon
the S p i r i t of God moved upon the
God
s a i d , L e t there be
light:
and
there
light."
It
i s immediately f o l l o w i n g t h i s
" p r o p h e t i c " scene that
N e i l has h i s v i s i o n of the sun moving a c r o s s a l l Canada, a
vision full
of the knowledge of e t e r n a l change.
the St. Lawrence R i v e r
he
(and by e x t e n s i o n
Thinking
of
i t s whole watershed),
imagines " a l l the time the deep water poured seaward under
the i c e . "
The
p r a i r i e s he
t h i n k s of as
over which the wind passed i n a f i r m and
"endless
plains . . .
continuous
flux
. . .
1
- 32.
-
over the wheat seeds f r o z e n i n t o the a l l u v i a l e a r t h . "
the e a r t h , being a l l u v i a l ,
Of
the
i s subject
towering Rockies, "the
to the
sense o f the mutable i s s t r o n g :
f o r the o n l y
t h i n g constant
beginning.
j u s t as
subject
stability
i s an
i s change.
dominates the a c t i o n i n the n o v e l ,
of the c h a r a c t e r s .
f o r c e s of change.
peaks were gleaming o b e l i s k s "
(79), o b e l i s k s o l d e r than Egypt's but
'Che
c o n t r o l l i n g the
sun,
the power of l i g h t , i s
Opposed to t h i s ,
or power of darkness, i s l i n k e d to the e a s t .
the
s t a b l e but
s o c i e t y of H a l i f a x , f o r e v e r
progress.
Like
i n the house was
the house, H a l i f a x h e r s e l f , "her
represents
recognizes
sees the house
s p i r i t of darkness.
back to the c o n t i n e n t
and
to the Old Country . . . would l i e here i n a l l weathers
unchangeably the same, and her
(32).
repre-
toward England,
Penny Wain
evil
night
entrenched
ever changed" and
i n c u b u s " (18), an o p p r e s s i v e ,
he:r face
The
the
east
t u r n i n g i t s eyes e a s t
i : ; i d e n t i f i e d w i t h the o l d Wain house.
as; "an
The
decadent, w h i l e the west
f u t u r e , o f f e r i n g change and
t h a t "nothing
i n e v i t a b l e as
light.
g e n e r a l l y i d e n t i f i e d w i t h the west.
past,
the
of the Odyssey as a model i n d i c a t e s
In Barometer R i s i n g , the
the
destinies
i f N e i l i s to triumph, so i s the c h i e f f o r c e
a s s o c i a t e d w i t h him,
sents
erosion.
illusion,
MacLennan makes t h i s v e r y c l e a r from
H i s obvious use
And,
to
I n e x o r a b l e change
a.t once to the reader t h a t N e i l ' s triumph i s as
Odysseus'.
Even
But
b e l l s would r i n g i n the
the b e l l s r i n g i n v a i n , f o r the c i t y has
darkness"
isolated
- 33.
itself
too c o m p l e t e l y
nature:
its
it
is
-
from North American s o c i e t y and from
a " c l e a r i n g i n the f o r e s t
back to the western w i l d e r n e s s ,
one of i t s
like
f r o n t i n g the sea"
ignoring i t .
It
s m a l l p a r t s , Wain's Wharf, which has an
"the gateway to a c o l o n i a l
fort."
It
is
is
like
entrance
solid,
yet
it
manages "to g i v e the i m p r e s s i o n that a t some time i n i t s
i t had been b e s i e g e d " (57).
constantly
The c i t y
a fort,
cage" (197).
Its
and because of
inhabitants
Any n o b i l i t y i t has
is
it
is
are imprisoned by t h e i r own w i l l .
borrowed from
bad weather"
destroyed,
change,
from the west which b r i n g the odour of
and i g n o r e d the
(177).
fact
It
is
the e s t a b l i s h e d
of the
that
the
place
.
.
. like a
"east wind always
spruce
tonic"
brought
not u n t i l the c i t y has been
largely
a t t i t u d e s d i s r u p t e d and b r o k e n ,
" i n s t e a d o f b e i n g p u l l e d eastward by B r i t a i n , " H a l i f a x ,
w i t h the r e s t of Canada,
ignore.
a l s o a "diminutive
a " f a l s e n o b i l i t y " (141)
t r e e s making "the atmosphere
(49),
this,
chooses to
The c i t y has b l i n d l y i g n o r e d the winds o f
i g n o r e d the winds
past
the c i t y has been
under s e i g e from the v e r y nature i t
is
the s u n .
In f a c t ,
(139),
"would h e r s e l f
decay and g i v e her a new b i r t h "
that
joining
pull Britain clear
of
(201).
Only one p a r t of the o l d Wain p r o p e r t y has any p o s i t i v e
the o n l y p a r t that
with i t s
l a n d of
Penny has any r e a l a f f e c t i o n
summer house and lime t r e e s r e m i n i s c e n t
the s u n .
Here l i e s a patch of
light
for,
of
the
the
in a field
val
garden
tropics,
of
- 34.
darkness.
-
Here, a l t h o u g h the season
i s deep w i n t e r w i t h
the
sun a t i t s lowest r e a c h south, the w i n t e r s u n l i g h t i s
prophetically
The
" l i k e a net thrown over the f r o z e n garden"
(106).
sun has c a s t i t s net and w i l l r e t u r n f o r i t s c a t c h .
The
sun w i l l r e t u r n to r e v i v e the c i t y a f t e r the e x p l o s i o n j u s t
as i t w i l l r e t u r n to r e v i v e and
now
"silent
daylight
r e s t o r e the w i n t e r w i l d e r n e s s ,
and empty i n the hush b e f o r e snow, and
l i k e a r u i n e d house" (71).
filled
with
But b e f o r e the sun r e t u r n s
the c i t y must e x p e r i e n c e u t t e r darkness, which i t does on
the
n i g h t f o l l o w i n g the e x p l o s i o n , "the d a r k e s t n i g h t anyone i n
H a l i f a x c o u l d remember" (177).
f o r c e s opposed throughout
The e x p l o s i o n i s where the g r e a t
the n o v e l meet.
The
time d e p i c t e d i n
the n o v e l , i t s p r e s e n t , i s t h a t moment from which can be viewed
the past and
the o l d s o c i e t y
( s t a b l e , decadent,
the f u t u r e w i t h i t s promise of a new
society
w a r l i k e ) , and
(active,
fresh,
peaceful).
The Mont Blanc, f i l l e d w i t h e x p l o s i v e s which are a
of
the o l d s o c i e t y , explodes
that s o c i e t y .
The
to r e s u l t
product
i n the d e s t r u c t i o n of
e x p l o s i o n i s b l i n d i n i t s s e l e c t i o n of
v i c t i m s , b l i n d as nature i s b l i n d .
Jim and Mary F r a s e r ,
two
g e n t l e , humane, p o s i t i v e c h a r a c t e r s , are k i l l e d h o r r i b l y , Mary's
head s e t t l i n g
While
i n death
" l i k e a c u t flower on i t s s t a l k "
the n e g a t i v e C o l o n e l Wain i s k i l l e d , so i s the
A l e c MacKenzie.
e x p l o s i o n world
(156)
positive
Both these c h a r a c t e r s e p i t o m i z e the o l d , pre- Wain, the e s t a b l i s h e d c i t y
s o c i e t y ; MacKenzie,
the simple r u r a l s o c i e t y doomed to e x t i n c t i o n .
MacKenzie, s u f f e r s
- 35.
his
i n j u r i e s s a v i n g the l i f e
of h i s son, who
p a r t of the f u t u r e s o c i e t y .
a fort
-
The
shattered c i t y
i s seen i n m i l i t a r y images:
working to salvage
lives
on to become
that was
once
a b a t t l e g r o u n d , where
something from the mess appear " l i k e
va.nguard of an a t t a c k i n g army stopped
the
i n i t s t r a c k s " (195);
the harbour i s " l i k e a s i m i t a r w i t h broken edges" (195);
a f t e r the snow, the c i t y seems "a white s h i e l d
sharp-edged s t a r s " (213).
edge, n a t u r e ' s
men
and,
. . . under
Though man's weapons have l o s t
have n o t .
But
the weapons are d i s c a r d e d .
the g r e a t c o n f l i c t
i s over
the
their
and
H a l i f a x ' s v a l u e as a weapon i n
f o r e i g n wars i s l a r g e l y d i m i n i s h e d .
The
o l d H a l i f a x has
fallen
as s u r e l y as the empires of the Near E a s t e r n and A f r i c a n d e s e r t s
to
l i e hidden
i n the
" p r i m a l s o l i t u d e of snow d r i f t i n g
sand over
the r u i n s " (197).
mistakes:
" E v e r y t h i n g was
Nature i s a l r e a d y c o v e r i n g man's
b u r i e d under shimmering snow so
d e l i c a t e l y c l e a n t h a t i t seemed as
to c o n c e a l
But
like
though nature had
conspired
the m i s b e g o t t e n e f f e c t s of human i n g e n u i t y "
there i s a sense, too, t h a t some g i a n t f o r c e has
(213).
deliberately
c r e a t e d the d i s a s t e r , f o r the c i t y appears as i f "punched i n by
a colossal f i s t "
(201).
The
fist
F r a n k e n s t e i n monster generated
breeding
of
by man's greed
f o r c e s g r e a t e r than he can c o n t r o l .
f o r power,
T h i s i s another
the p r e t e r n a t u r a l elements i n the n o v e l , and
suggestion
for
i s that of some t i t a n i c
of MacLennan's c l a s s i c i s m .
perhaps
another
On one hand, the
suitors
Penny's a f f e c t i o n s ( C o l o n e l Wain and
are d e s t r o y e d ,
and,
example
the
where Odysseus i s a i d e d by
establishment)
the hand o f Athene,
N e i l i s a i d e d by the hand of Fortune or chance.
On the o t h e r
hand, combined w i t h the g e n e r a l f e e l i n g of d e s t i n y throughout
the
n o v e l , t h i s f i n a l blow transcends c o i n c i d e n c e (which i t would
be c a l l e d , were the n o v e l " r e a l i s t i c " ) and assumes the nature o f
necessity.
The e x p l o s i o n then becomes a d i v i n e r e t r i b u t i o n ,
as a punishment f o r man's h u b r i s , or simply an
sent
inevitable
m a n i f e s t a t i o n of moira, F a t e , a r e s t o r a t i o n o f balance i n s o c i e t y
and n a t u r e .
The e x p l o s i o n over --the r e t r i b u t i o n exacted, the
of o p p o s i t e s s e t t l e d , w i t h the power of l i g h t
conflict
triumphant--
the
hero s e t s f o r t h from the scene of b a t t l e to r e s t o r e harmony to
the community.
In t h i s , N e i l p a r a l l e l s
e p i c quest, the A e n e i d .
the hero o f V i r g i l ' s
The hero of the Roman work, Aeneas,
f o l l o w s a path s i m i l a r to t h a t o f Odysseus, but the
g o a l of h i s quest i s to found a new
N e i l passes through b i t t e r
them.
prime
c i t y and s t a t e .
L i k e Aeneas,
times, but he i s not d e f e a t e d by
MacLennan makes the p a r a l l e l between the A e n e i d
Barometer R i s i n g c l e a r when he has N e i l
and
think,
F o r s a n e t haec o l i m meminisse i n v a b i t ^ s i c j . Only one who had
e x p e r i e n c e d u l t i m a t e t h i n g s c o u l d comprehend the g r e a t n e s s o f
t h a t l i n e . (200)4
L i k e Aeneas, N e i l
and,
f e e l s i t i s h i s d e s t i n y to found a new
l i k e Odysseus, he has
further t r i a l s
to undergo.
city,
The
^•"Perhaps one day t h i s too w i l l be p l e a s a n t to remember."
A e n e i d , Book I , 203.
s t a r s are i n h i s f a v o u r .
As N e i l and
their child
the f u t u r e i s c o n t a i n e d ) , an image
( i n the c h i l d
of the s t a r s h i n t s a t the f u t u r e .
O r i o n a t t h e i r backs was
O r i o n the hunter,
The 'Bear hung over
as i s noted
arm
The
soon reach h i s z e n i t h and
bear hangs d i r e c t l y over
the B a s i n ,
and,
to the f u t u r e .
i n a n c i e n t western m y t h o l o g i e s ,
d i r e c t i o n of p a r a d i s e .
westward i s the
C e r t a i n l y i t i s to the west t h a t Penny
t u r n t h e i r faces to c a t c h on the breeze
s m e l l of balsam" (219).
The
a i r is clearing,
tremor of a r i s i n g wind" (219).
as the d e s t i n i e s o f both N e i l and
The
quest
"the f r e s h
the barometer
r i s i n g as the weather improves, and N e i l hears
"the
slight
i s not y e t
Canada are not y e t
finished,
realized.
s p i r i t has been born, and N e i l must plunge i n t o
"a.nomalous l a n d . . . s p r a w l i n g waste . . . empty t r a c t
primordial silences," this
mark, t h i s f u t u r e " (79).
before
"unborn m i g h t i n e s s ,
Neil calls
remains.
to i t s b i r t h .
But
this
this
of
question
the n a t i o n "unborn"
the e x p l o s i o n , the c a t a c l y s m which may
equivalent
Basin,
i n the p r o p h e t i c " g e n e s i s " scene, s t r e t c h e s "a l o n g
Traditionally,
But a new
the
r e p r e s e n t i n g the o l d , war-breeding s o c i e t y
to the n o r t h w e s t " (75), p o i n t i n g the way
and N e i l
find
mounting toward h i s z e n i t h " (216).
f i g h t i n g to the death i n Europe, w i l l
then d e c l i n e .
Penny s e t f o r t h to
be
considered
the q u e s t i o n mark, the f u t u r e ,
N e i l does not know e x a c t l y what he
i s going
to do
( n e i t h e r does Canada), but, whatever i t i s , i t w i l l be h i s
- 38. -
independent d e c i s i o n and a c t .
Throughout
the n o v e l there i s a heavy s t r e s s on the
process of change i n nature and s o c i e t y .
at
one
Many o f the c h a r a c t e r s
time or another express t h e i r awareness o f changes
occurring.
For example, Roddie Wain i s made aware o f change,
g;ently when he watches the Olympic
s a i l away, h a r s h l y when he
l e a r n s o f the deaths o f Jim and Mary F r a s e r , a l e s s o n which i s
"the
abrupt and r u t h l e s s impingement o f the unseen and
i n c a l c u l a b l e i n t o h i s own
of
life"
c o u r s e , Penny r e c o g n i z e s t h a t
(187).
the
More d e e p l y than
"the r i g i d automatic l i f e
h e r f a m i l y ' s h i e r a r c h y had been blown wide a p a r t " (191).
change may
occur i n two d i f f e r e n t ways or f o r two
reasons^ undetermined
Roddie,
of
Such
different
and undeterminable chance, or d e t e r m i n i n g
and d e t e r m i n a b l e d e s t i n y .
"Nothing matters i n the w o r l d but chance"
Jim
F r a s e r , and h i s and Mary's deaths would seem to r e - e n f o r c e
t h i s view.
self
Less ready to a c c e p t t h i s , N e i l Macrae f i n d s him-
" t r y i n g to r e s i s t
the c o n v i c t i o n t h a t chance and
terous a c c i d e n t had complete
c o n t r o l of h i s l i f e "
chance has a c e r t a i n , even a major,
chance might
(134).
That
"One
l e a d him to another w i t h no b i n d i n g l i n k but a
a f u t u r e which
past" (7).
prepos-
c o n t r o l he cannot deny.
p e c u l i a r t e n a c i t y which made him determined
for
(127), says
to preserve h i m s e l f
gave no promise o f b e i n g s u p e r i o r to the
But h i s t e n a c i o u s d e t e r m i n a t i o n to c a r r y on, h i s
deep-seated w i l l
to s u r v i v e , i s not the o n l y t h r e a d to grasp, f o r
- 39. -
"not even . . .
evidence
l i f e was p r o b l e m a t i c
degradation
(134).
as a f l y ' s .
him t h a t h i s
Rather i t seemed the f i n a l
o f war that i t c o u l d make a man's l i f e appear s o "
N e i l r e c o g n i z e s , as C o l o n e l Wain to h i s disadvantage
does not,
but
was a b l e to convince
t h a t "war was now n e i t h e r a game nor a p r o f e s s i o n ,
something he c o u l d n ' t
c o n t r o l o r u n d e r s t a n d " (133).
Neil
sees man i n the g r i p o f u n c o n t r o l l a b l e f o r c e s t h a t he h i m s e l f
has
unleashed, f o r c e s that transcend
are working out a p a t t e r n .
chance and a c c i d e n t , and
A man c o u l d determine t h i s
pattern,
i f he c o u l d o n l y step back f a r enough t o see i t i n p e r s e c t i v e .
I t i s Angus Murray who best glimpses these
their
p a t t e r n s , where N e i l
f o r c e s and comprehends
cannot.
Angus i s an anomaly i n the Homeric p a t t e r n o f Barometer
Rising.
be
His c l o s e s t counterpart
i n the Odyssey would seem to
Theoclymenus, the prophet who j o i n s Telemachus on h i s r e t u r n
to I t h a c a .
But the p a r a l l e l i s tenuous a t b e s t .
Granted, h i s
r o l e i s p a r t l y p r o p h e t i c , but he adds much more to the n o v e l
than t h i s .
thoroughly
H i s r o l e i s a t once thoroughly
modern and
classical.
He i s , l i k e N e i l Macrae, an o u t s i d e r , an e x i l e from the
entrenched s o c i e t y , engaged i n a quest
p l a c e i n the w o r l d .
He i s a man o f s u p e r i o r powers, a d o c t o r
w i t h a broad e d u c a t i o n
experienced
has
to f i n d a p u r p o s e f u l
and profound understanding,
a l l l e v e l s of s o c i e t y .
who has
The s o l i t u d e o f h i s e x i l e
produced the courage and endurance to stand a l o n e , but the
- 40.
loneliness i s s t i l l
he
-
p a i n f u l to him.
In t w e n t i e t h c e n t u r y
i s something o f an a n t i - h e r o , the l o n e l y , d i s s a t i s f i e d
i n t e l l e c t u a l c u t i n the P r u f r o c k p a t t e r n .
character allows him
This a s p e c t
He
e q u i v a l e n t of the Chorus i n c l a s s i c a l
Greek drama, the
of the enduring
Although he
human v a l u e s above and
i s a rough modern
a l s o h i s r o l e to withdraw o c c a s i o n a l l y and
this
He has
voice
beyond the s t o r y
plays a major part i n working out
perspective.
of h i s
to stand a l o o f much of the time, commenting
c o o l l y on the c h a r a c t e r s and a c t i o n .
in
terms,
itself.
the p l o t , i t i s
put the whole n a r r a t i v e
a number of q u a l i t i e s
t h a t s u i t him
task.
Being
by
p r o f e s s i o n a surgeon, Angus i s not one
f o r g e t d e t a i l s or leave loose ends hanging.
this aspect
The
to
best example of
of h i s r o l e i s h i s o b t a i n i n g A l e c M a c K e n z i e s . s i g n e d
1
statement of N e i l ' s innocence, which the impetuous N e i l
f o r g o t t e n i n the heat of the c r i s i s .
--he
for
l i s t s a few o f h i s f a v o r i t e s :
Nichomachaean E t h i c s , R a s h d a l l ' s
has
A l s o , being widely
Plato's Republic,
read
the
Theory of Good and E v i l ,
Horace,
C a t u l l u s , Thucydides, Shakespeare and M i l t o n - - and
being able
understand and a p p r e c i a t e what he has
the
i n t e l l e c t u a l d i s t a n c e to be
He: stands
as he
wholly
epicurean,
and
He
says he
necessary
o b j e c t i v e about the a c t i o n .
i n n e i t h e r camp, n e i t h e r the o l d nor
i n d i c a t e s when he
extremes" (208).
fairly
read, he has
to
the
i s "caught between . . .
new,
two
i s f i n a l l y a s t o i c , a b l e to endure, and
exponent of t h i s l i f e and
o f the v i r t u e s of
an
the
-
golden mean.
He
but h i s s o r t i e s
his
i s v e r y human--
i n t o the dark s i d e of h i s nature
are a p a r t of
quest.
the i n d i v i d u a l .
t h i n g s more i n terms of the u n i v e r s a l than
Before
the e x p l o s i o n , he
prophesies
f a l l of the o l d , e s t a b l i s h e d world, the t i t l e s
c l a s s i c a l works o f l i t e r a t u r e
r i n g i n h i s mind l i k e
childhood
had
-
i s by no means f a u l t l e s s --he
Angus c o n s i d e r s
and
41.
t h a t he admires making "a
from a c a t h e d r a l which the years
The
forgotten ancients
knows them.
R e f l e c t i n g on the
(193)
process
century
going
a u t h o r stands
of
i t s implica-
to be a
of t h i s a l t e r n a t i o n between boredom and
p r o v i d e s no
i n spite
of change, he asks h i m s e l f ,
a l l the r e s t of the t w e n t i e t h
He
are
Later i n
the n o v e l , Angus p h i l o s o p h i z e s on the e x p l o s i o n and
continuance
poignant
MacLennan i s c l e a r l y
i n d i c a t i n g h i s sympathies through t h i s c h a r a c t e r .
"Was
great
of the t e c h n i c a l era
i n h i s mind to d i s c a r d e d r e l i g i o n , but,
e v e r y t h i n g , Angus i s g l a d he
tions.
of the
the remembrance of a b e l l heard i n
b l i n d l y emptied" (139).
equivalent
the d e c l i n e
f i n a l answer.
But
violence?"
from where the
omniscient
a t the time of w r i t i n g , the answer i s o b v i o u s l y
"Yes!" and he can expect h i s readers
R e f l e c t i n g on the i d e a of coherent
to share
t h i s knowledge.
p a t t e r n s a t work i n the
u n i v e r s e , Murray t h i n k s , "the death o f an i n d i v i d u a l was
i n s i g n i f i c a n t event u n l e s s
an
i t c o u l d be r e c o n c i l e d w i t h a p a t t e r n
p o s s e s s i n g a wider meaning" (207).
He
sees no
p a t t e r n i n the
- 42.
H a l i f a x e x p l o s i o n , although
t h a t i s there i s the one
still
too c l o s e to see
author's
own
he
-
senses one
MacLennan s u p p l i e s .
i t . He
makes him
What puts him
is s t i l l
and
caught i n h i s
c o u l d o n l y know the meaning
longer reached a f t e r
(143).
paradox t h a t to f i n d h i m s e l f a man
Neil
like Neil,
purpose.
the
understanding,
seeks j u s t i c e f o r the maligned and
v a l u e s are h u m a n i s t i c
l i g h t , and
these he
by now
shrewd and
point
profound.
freedom f o r the caged; h i s
to r e g a i n h i s honour and
does.
a t l a s t has
summertime of l i f e
the
and he w i l l not be f a l s e to them.
i s on a quest
And
must
reach.
Angus i s g e n t l e and
He
the torment of hope"
the r e s u l t of the s u c c e s s f u l quest and
which both Angus and
and
such as A l b e r t Camus'
of peace when he no
lose himself,
the
s o l i d l y i n the t w e n t i e t h c e n t u r y
i s h i s f e e l i n g t h a t "a man
This i s the
one
Even Angus i s
a man
so l i k e o t h e r modern a n t i - h e r o e s
L'etranger,
The
i s a p e r c e p t i v e man,
c h i e f spokesman, but he
time.
i s there.
He
He,
realize his
passes through the darkness i n t o
a v i s i o n of h i s f u t u r e , a
settled
i n a place t r u l y h i s home (211-12).
become c l e a r t h a t Angus has many of Odysseus'
I t has
qualities
t h a t N e i l does not have, and N e i l many that Angus l a c k s .
Together they make a whole Odysseus, and
humanist i d e a l s MacLennan v a l u e s
exemplify
so h i g h l y .
the
classical
By u s i n g Homer's
Odyssey as a model f o r h i s n a r r a t i v e s t r u c t u r e and c h a r a c t e r i z a t i o n ,
MacLennan adds some of the weight of the g r e a t e p i c ' s r e p u t a t i o n
- 43.
to h i s own
s t o r y and,
-
more important,
supplies a h i s t o r i c a l
p e r s p e c t i v e which makes the H a l i f a x e x p l o s i o n more
i n Canadian h i s t o r y .
the s h a t t e r e d Troy.
significant
H a l i f a x i s both the r e s t o r e d I t h a c a
Angus Murray i s the r e t u r n e d
and
Odysseus a t
peace i n h i s home; N e i l Macrae i s the r e t u r n e d Odysseus r e u n i t e d
w i t h h i s Penelope, the Odysseus who
has
f u r t h e r quests,
Aeneas who
But
the a n c i e n t
has
i s to r a i s e a new
deeper meaning than
I t can be
city.
seen, u s i n g Northrop F r y e ' s c r i t e r i a ,
romance.
c o n f l i c t , " and
quest
pattern
this.
Barometer R i s i n g c o n s i s t s of a b l e n d i n g o f two
comedy and
and
The a r c h e t y p a l
generic
that
plots,
theme of romance i s "argon or
the n o v e l i s l a r g e l y comprised o f such
conflict.
The a r c h e t y p a l theme of comedy i s " a n a g n o r i s i s or r e c o g n i t i o n
of a new
born s o c i e t y r i s i n g i n triumph around a somewhat
m y s t e r i o u s hero and h i s b r i d e , " 5 and
this.
The movement i n the n o v e l
the n o v e l c l e a r l y
"from a s o c i e t y c o n t r o l l e d by
h a b i t , r i t u a l bondage, a r b i t r a r y law and
a s o c i e t y c o n t r o l l e d by youth and
o f comedy.
promises
the o l d e r c h a r a c t e r s
pragmatic f r e e d o m "
0
to
is typical
At the same time, i n romance,
the o p p o s i t e poles of the c y c l e s of nature are a s s i m i l a t e d to
the o p p o s i t i o n of the hero and h i s enemy. The enemy i s a s s o c i a t e d w i t h w i n t e r , darkness, c o n f u s i o n , s t e r i l i t y , moribund
Anatomy of C r i t i c i s m
6
Ibid.,
p.
196.
(New
York:
Atheneum, 1966), p.
192.
- 44.
l i f e , and o l d age, and the hero w i t h s p r i n g , dawn, o r d e r ,
f e r t i l i t y , v i g o r , and youth.1
Such a d i a l e c t i c of f o r c e s i s c l e a r l y drawn i n the n o v e l .
novel
stands c l o s e r to the
i d e a l of romance than to the
The
ideal
of comedy; hence i t i s a comic-romance.
On
the
l e v e l of the i n d i v i d u a l , that of the hero
N e i l Macrae (and
a u t h o r and
the
to some extent
Angus Murray), and
of
himself,
the
reader,
the quest-romance i s a search of the . . . d e s i r i n g s e l f f o r a
f u l f i l l m e n t t h a t w i l l d e l i v e r i t from the a n x i e t i e s of r e a l i t y
but w i l l s t i l l c o n t a i n that r e a l i t y .
The a n t a g o n i s t s of the
quests are o f t e n s i n i s t e r f i g u r e s . . . t h a t c l e a r l y have a
parental o r i g i n .
8
The
antagonists
i n Barometer R i s i n g are epitomized
Wain, the hero's u n c l e
figures,
and
too, have a place
"wise o l d man."
foster father.
i n the n o v e l
Colonel
redeemed
parental
i n such f i g u r e s as
This r o l e i s taken by Angus Murray, and
feminine c o u n t e r p a r t ,
a potential bride
"the
. . . who
sits
On a more g e n e r a l
q u i e t l y a t home w a i t i n g
i n t o the
188.
8
Ibid.,
p.
193.
9
Ibid.,
p.
195.
first,
the
"This myth i s o f t e n
a s s o c i a t e d w i t h a f l o o d , the r e g u l a r symbol of the
p.
for
l e v e l , of the s i x i s o l a t a b l e
myth of the b i r t h or r e b i r t h of the h e r o .
Ibid.,
his
come back to her,"9 i s
phases of romance, Barometer R i s i n g f a l l s
7
the
s y b i l l i n e wise-mother f i g u r e , o f t e n
the hero to f i n i s h h i s wanderings and
Penny Wain.
But
by
beginning
- 45.
and the end of
manifestation
disaster
is
the c y c l e , " 1 0
-
the
o f cosmic d i s a s t e r .
f l o o d archetype b e i n g one
In t h i s n o v e l ,
the e x p l o s i o n which comes from the
the d i s a s t e r ,
the t r e a s u r e s
the
sea.
cosmic
Following
p r e v i o u s l y h i d d e n are r e v e a l e d and
the b u r i e d seed begins to grow; i n such a romance, the
source
of wealth
or h u m a n . "
conflict
a.nd the
rising
X i
is
potential
f e r t i l i t y or new l i f e ,
vegetable
The d i s a s t e r marks the p i v o t a l p o i n t of
between the
powers of
powers of s t e r i l i t y ,
fertility,
"real
the
o l d age and d a r k n e s s ,
youth and l i g h t ,
w i t h the
latter
victorious.
This c o n s i d e r a t i o n of
shows t h a t MacLennan i s
the n o v e l ' s a r c h e t y p a l
e x p r e s s i n g a p a t t e r n which i s
of change on both the i n d i v i d u a l and s o c i a l
levels.
deaths and r e b i r t h s of N e i l Macrae and H a l i f a x are
to the death and r e b i r t h o f Canadian s o c i e t y ,
consciousness.
The c h i l d i s now r i d of i t s
may grow to a d u l t h o o d without
beneficent
parents:
As the
time scheme i n the n o v e l i n d i c a t e s
ending l a t e r a t n i g h t - -
p.
198.
Hlbid.,
p.
198.
of Canadian
the new s o c i e t y has cast.i o f f
The new-born s o c i e t y has not y e t
Ibid.,
analogous
self-
parents and
f e a r of them, accompanied by
back.
l u
prophetic
The symbolic
sinister
t i e s and moves forward w i t h the g r e a t western
evening,
significance
there
its
its
colonial
t r a d i t i o n s at
its
t r u l y r i s e n i n triumph.
--beginning in early
i s a p e r i o d of
darkness
- 46.
left
to v e n t u r e through b e f o r e
-
the dawn.
It
is
still
winter,
/
and the s p r i n g i s
as
the sun w i l l
f a r ahead.
return.
throughout the n o v e l ,
belongs
to Canada.
But t h a t s p r i n g w i l l
This i s
the p o s i t i v e
fate
come as
sure
t h a t works
the p o s i t i v e d e s t i n y the a u t h o r imagines
Chapter
Each Man's Son:
Three:
The Growing Irony
Each Man's Son, p u b l i s h e d t e n years a f t e r Barometer R i s i n g ,
i s a n o v e l o f more s u b t l e and complex s t r u c t u r e than those
precede
(Two
.
it.
Because i n the two immediately
S o l i t u d e s , 1945,
and The P r e c i p i c e ,
that
preceding novels
1948)
"everything else
. . i s e v e n t u a l l y s u b o r d i n a t e d to the e l a b o r a t i o n o f the
national
theme, they a r e the l e a s t s u c c e s s f u l o f MacLennan's n o v e l s ,
i n human u n d e r s t a d i n g and formal Cohesion a l i k e . " !
As Edmund
W i l s o n says, when MacLennan i s c o n s c i o u s l y a c t i n g as the " s e c r e t a r y
of
society,"
one f e e l s that i n h i s e a r n e s t and ambitious attempt to cover
h i s l a r g e s e l f - a s s i g n m e n t he sometimes embarks upon themes
which he b e l i e v e s to be s o c i a l l y important but which do n o t
r e a l l y much e x c i t e h i s i m a g i n a t i o n . 2
Where, i n Two S o l i t u d e s , MacLennan t r i e s
d e f i n e the s o c i a l l y important Canadian
and,
perhaps
too h a r d to
French-English c o n f l i c t ,
i n The P r e c i p i c e , the American-Canadian c o n f l i c t , the
r e s u l t s are rather f l a t ,
f o r c e d and u n c o n v i n c i n g , w h i l e , i n
Each Man's Son, he r e t u r n s to e x p r e s s i n g a b a s i c p e r s o n a l c o n f l i c t
such as appears
i n Barometer R i s i n g .
To do t h i s , he r e t u r n s to
h i s r o o t s i n Cape B r e t o n I s l a n d , Nova S c o t i a , r e t u r n s from a world
he has i d e a s about
to examine the world he knows.
The r e s u l t i s ,
as Woodcock says, a " t e n s e l y c o n s t r u c t e d and w e l l u n i f i e d book,
1G. Woodcock, "A N a t i o n ' s Odyssey," p. 11.
2
"0
Canada,"- The New Y o r k e r , Nov. 14,
1964,
p. 100.
-
48.
i n which the balance of theme and m y t h i c a l s t r u c t u r e i s r e established.
The
p a t t e r n s t h a t develop are a t once i n t e n s e l y
p e r s o n a l and d e s c r i p t i v e o f a c r i t i c a l
n a t i o n a l consciousness.
enhanced by, and
and
The
t u r n i n g p o i n t i n the
i n t e n s i t y o f the n o v e l i s much
to a c e r t a i n e x t e n t o r i g i n a t e s i n , the
i m p l i c i t mythic
elements and
the accompanying sense
explicit
of the
preternatural.
In Each Man's Son, MacLennan once a g a i n draws upon Homer's
Odyssey f o r one
Although
o f the two b a s i c p l o t s t h a t comprise
the author
i n t r o d u c e s important
the n o v e l .
changes i n t o the p a t t e r n ,
the s t o r y of A r c h i e MacNeil
is s t i l l
Odysseus s e e k i n g h i s home.
A r c h i e ' s h e r o i c q u a l i t i e s are made
very c l e a r :
he
i s the " b r a v e s t man
the s t o r y of a wandering
i n Cape B r e t o n , " ^
u n p r e d i c t a b l e " (25), "a hero whom nobody understood
admired" (24).
As a young man
he
t h e i r whole l i v e s
(105).
"to the c a t
I am not one
t h e i r son,
"live
of them"
"gone out i n t o
done t h i s i n o r d e r to c r e a t e a new
f o r h i m s e l f and h i s f a m i l y .
"Nations's
He belongs
l i k e oxes and cows . . .
(17), and he has
J
everyone
i s q u i c k to boast t h a t w h i l e some people
He has, as h i s w i f e t e l l s
world"
and
He
Odyssey," p.
and
"had moved w i t h the s u r e ,
r e c k l e s s grace of a w i l d a n i m a l " (41).
f a m i l y " (93) and
"fierce
goes f o r t h and does b a t t l e ,
the
life
until,
14.
^Hugh MacLennan, Each Man's Son (Toronto: M c C l e l l a n d &
Stewart, 1965), p. 21.
A l l subsequent q u o t a t i o n s from the n o v e l
a r e from t h i s e d i t i o n and a r e f o l l o w e d by page r e f e r e n c e s i n
parentheses.
- 49.
"the f i g h t s
-
. . . o v e r , " he seeks to r e t u r n "to a p l a c e where
people would l i k e him"
(207), h i s home, the o r i g i n o f h i s quest.
H i s c h i e f d i f f e r e n c e from Homer's Odysseus i s t h a t he i s not
successful i n f u l f i l l i n g
or a t home.
f e r o c i o u s and
He r e p r e s e n t s o n l y one
p h y s i c a l l y mighty
intellectual qualities
to f a i l u r e .
the purpose
o f h i s quest, e i t h e r
abroad
s i d e o f Odysseus, the
s i d e , and,
l a c k i n g any o f the
t h a t c o u l d e f f e c t a b a l a n c e , he
i s doomed
In f a i l i n g , he b r i n g s down h i s Penelope w i t h
him.
M o l l i e MacNeil shares a number o f c h a r a c t e r i s t i c s w i t h
Burner's Penelope.
landscape and
Greece,
I f we
remember MacLennan's o p i n i o n that
people o f Nova S c o t i a resemble
those o f Homeric
the o m n i s c i e n t n a r r a t o r ' s d e s c r i p t i o n o f M o l l i e ' s
"so s t r a i g h t i t was
the
nose,
almost G r e c i a n " (127), i s seen to r e v e a l
an i n t e n t i o n a l p a r a l l e l .
L i k e Penelope, M o l l i e i s f o r years
faithful
to her absent husband, p a t i e n t l y w a i t i n g and working,
Penelope
does a t h e r loom, a t "a frame w i t h a p a r t i a l l y
rug mounted on i t "
(23).
She,
too, i s tempted by a
The
finished
suitor
(Camire) to f o r s a k e her husband, and begins to y i e l d
j u s t b e f o r e h e r husband r e t u r n s .
as
slightly
p a r a l l e l i s minimal but i s
there.
The
l e a d i n g f i g u r e i n the o t h e r b a s i c p l o t , D a n i e l A i n s l i e ,
is: a l s o p o r t r a y e d as a h e r o i c f i g u r e , but a hero v e r y
different
from A r c h i e M a c N e i l .
views
A l a n MacNeil, a p e r c e p t i v e boy,
A i n s l i e as " h a r d l y a man
everyone
at a l l .
e l s e he knew" (51).
He was
The Doctor, f a r above
"Above" i s a r e v e a l i n g word, f o r
- 50. -
A i n s l i e works and f e e l s h a p p i e s t
above the town.
i n the h o s p i t a l h i g h on a h i l l
Here he has been dubbed "the Regius P r o f e s s o r "
(58), p a r t l y because o f h i s "hobby" o f r e a d i n g the Greek
c l a s s i c s , and p a r t l y because o f h i s s t a t u r e i n the h o s p i t a l .
Here he i s second o n l y to Dr. Dougald MacKenzie who i s d e s c r i b e d
as
"a t r i b a l god" (121).
On one l e v e l he i s an a r t i s t :
he
compares h i m s e l f to "a c o n c e r t p i a n i s t " (169) and the h o s p i t a l
is
the "world where h i s s k i l l had made him m a s t e r " (49).
another
l e v e l he i s a s a i n t :
" I f t o t a l c o n c e n t r a t i o n on a h e a l i n g
t a s k i s a form o f h o l i n e s s , the two d o c t o r s
were s a i n t s " (120).
On
And on a t h i r d
{ A i n s l i e and Doucettej
l e v e l he i s something o f a
w i z a r d , a person w i t h niagic a t h i s command, f o r he f e e l s
s u p e r s t i t i o u s l y c o n f i d e n t o f h i s own powers" (117).
"almost
He f e e l s
t h i s so s t r o n g l y t h a t Dr. MacKenzie i s d r i v e n to demand o f him,
"Why n o t admit once i n a w h i l e
t h a t you're human?" (60)
A r c h i e MacNeil i s the hero o f brute
Where
p h y s i c a l power, A i n s l i e
i s the
hero o f the mental powers, and both heroes a r e engaged i n quests
to e r a d i c a t e mysterious
r e a l enemy.
having
Ainslie
enemies.
f i n a l l y r e c o g n i z e s h i s , but o n l y a f t e r
fought many s u b s t i t u t e s .
even r e c o g n i z e
A r c h i e never r e c o g n i z e s h i s
F o r a l o n g time he does not
t h a t he i s on a quest, although
h i s setting himself
the t a s k o f t r a n s l a t i n g "the whole o f the Odyssey that y e a r " (34)
is
evidence
enough.
He makes the g r e a t c l a s s i c
a b a r r i e r to overcome, not r e a l i z i n g
quest myth
itself
t h a t he r e a l l y wishes to
emulate Odysseus, and i t i s h i s w i f e , Margaret, who sees that the
t r a n s l a t i o n i s an "academic g i a n t "
Both heroes f i g h t
go w e l l .
there
" g i a n t s , " and f o r n e i t h e r does the
Reminiscent of N e i l Macrae on h i s
i s a "sadness i n A r c h i e ' s eyes .
had t h a t
too,
(160).
.
r e t u r n to H a l i f a x ,
. Even f e r o c i o u s
look i n t h e i r eyes when they were s i c k " (97).
has eyes that
"looked l i k e
animals
Ainslie,
those of a wounded a n i m a l "
"an animal who had been chased f o r m i l e s and knows he has
farther
to r u n " (36).
of h i m s e l f
This i s
comparison of h i m s e l f
all
connected
(59),
which i s
This p o i n t s
to the
fact
things,
what D a n i e l w i l l
dreamer i s
the "rock
struggle
is
basically
the keys
when he speaks of M a r g a r e t ; "She has
them too" (66).
l e a r n on h i s
that a "man's t r o u b l e
quest,
it's
dreamers.
One of
This
what he dreams" (60).
i n danger of becoming "a l a t t e r - d a y Job"
The Cape B r e t o n I s l a n d e r s
as g r e a t
is
and you must a c c e p t
what he does or d o e s n ' t do,
his
"Was d e f i a n c e
and D r . MacKenzie g i v e s one of
to v i c t o r y i n the s t r u g g l e
accepted
to
past of h i s whole r a c e " (200).
that A i n s l i e ' s
psychological,
still
slow down nor
The r o c k o f Sisyphus
i n them a l l , b u r i e d deep i n the
(65),
conception
linked, i n turn,
to the m y t h i c a l S i s y p h u s .
t h a t remained?" he a s k s .
internal,
to A i n s l i e ' s
" i n a t r e a d m i l l which he c o u l d n e i t h e r
escape by jumping o f f "
battle
is
isn't
The
(60).
o f H i g h l a n d stodk are p o r t r a y e d
their
traits
is a v i v i d
which works c l o s e l y w i t h t h e i r s u p e r s t i t i o u s
imagination
n a t u r e to
perceive
)
s p i r i t s a t work i n the w o r l d .
incline
toward m e l a n c h o l y ,
Their s u p e r s i t i t i o u s
imaginations
"a p r i m i t i v e sadness" (105),
typified
i n Angus the Barraman s t r i v i n g
appease the gods" (113).
to become "gloomy enough to
A i n s l i e h i m s e l f shares
this
melancholy,
c o n c e i v i n g of God as the " a l l - s e e i n g A n c i e n t of Days who
the same time damns men
that "underneath
(201).
and
l o v e s them," and he becomes aware
a l l h i s troubles . . . lay this ancient curse"
These people
f e a r the a n c i e n t c u r s e --on
l e v e l , O r i g i n a l S i n - - f o r which they must s u f f e r .
w i t c h , Mrs.
whill
MacCuish, prophesies
to come t r u e , M o l l i e
f r i e n d s h i p w i t h Camire.
paying w i t h her l i f e
t h a t Mrs.
c u r s e which hobbles
itself"
(201).
fighting,
As the o l d
The
MacCuish r e p r e s e n t s , b e l i e f i n the
the s p i r i t and
The H i g h l a n d men
they do no t r e a l i z e
(
no amount of b r u t e f o r c e w i l l
Barometer R i s i n g , the way
l e a d s "to a f e a r of love
d e f y the curse by d r i n k i n g and
fighting
the r e a l A r c h i e
t h a t t h i s i s inadequate,
that
d e f e a t an enemy i n the mind.
of v i o l e n c e i s the o l d way,
w i t h the o l d w o r l d .
Here, too, O r i o n the hunter
the o l d v i o l e n t way,
and
f o r a Homeric p a r a l l e l ,
prophecy
f o r her
i d o l i z i n g g r e a t p h y s i c a l s t r e n g t h and g r e a t
But
"You
( s e x u a l i n f i d e l i t y ) , but the whole
power i n the legendary G i a n t M a c A s k i l l and
MacNeil.
Christian
But what she r e a l l y pays f o r i s not what
Mrs. MacCuish b e l i e v e s i t to be
perverted b e l i e f
the
i n a warning to M o l l i e ,
pay f o r i t when h i m s e l f comes home" (27).
appears
at
As i n
associated
i s symbolic
of
i s l i n k e d w i t h G i a n t M a c A s k i l l and,
the C y c l o p s .
Homer's Odysseus d e f e a t e d
the Cyclops w i t h the powers of the mind, through a c l e v e r r u s e .
A r c h i e MacNeil
knows o n l y the t a c t i c s of the Cyclops h i m s e l f .
- 53.
D a n i e l A i n s l i e has a t
-
l e a s t the c a p a c i t y to d e f e a t h i s
But the odds are a g a i n s t a l l those who s u f f e r
curse,
innocent
The b a s i c
enemy.
from the
ancient
though they may be.
innocence and h e l p l e s s n e s s of the simple H i g h l a n d e r s
i s made c l e a r i n the animal imagery.
Mollie,
for instance,
shown as g e n t l e and v u l n e r a b l e , her eyes h a v i n g "the
eager
loving-kindness
Alan,
witnessing
of a d e e r ' s
the v i o l e n t
eyes" (127).
deaths
Similarly,
o f h i s mother and Camire,
stops
" l i k e a fawn caught i n the h e a d l i g h t o f a t r a i n " (212).
image c o n t a i n s a double o p p o s i t i o n - - t h e meek and the
is
The
powerful,
the n a t u r a l and the man-made-- as w e l l as a sense o f an enormous
destructive
force
i n motion which cannot be s t o p p e d .
c l e v e r Camire cannot e s c a p e .
some progress w i t h M o l l i e ,
While Camire i s
had-finally
found something to eat"
downstairs,
Camire f i r s t
f o r t h across
the room,
[givesjmouselike
used as w e l l ,
f i n a l l y making
A l a n u p s t a i r s watches a mouse
i l l u m i n a t e d i n the m o o n l i g h t , and he i s
when he f i n d s A r c h i e i s
reacts
"glad because
(209).
appears
to h i s a t t a c k " l i k e a f o x , " but
too s t r o n g f o r him he d a r t s "back and
t r y i n g to f i n d a place to h i d e as he
squeaks o f
t e r r o r " (212).
Other animals are
to p r o j e c t the g e n t l e melancholy o f the H i g h l a n d e r s ,
the c r y o f a s e a - b i r d l o s t i n the fog"
C r e a t u r e s o f the a i r e n t e r
when he i s
the mouse
When A r c h i e
as i n the d e s c r i p t i o n o f a G a e l i c song which sounds
p l a i n t i v e as
Even the
elated,
he f e e l s
into
"as s o f t and
(28).
the d e s c r i p t i o n o f A i n s l i e ,
"his s p i r i t r i s e
like a bird in
too:
the
- 54. -
sky"
(129); when he i s depressed, he f e e l s
"as though h i s
had h u r l e d i t s e l f a g a i n s t the window o f h i s l i f e
bat and broken the g l a s s , " and f e e l s h i s s p i r i t
bat over a dark and s i n i s t e r l a n d s c a p e "
spirit
l i k e a wounded
flicker "like a
(201).
On the o t h e r hand, Margaret and h e r f a m i l y , not b e i n g o f
Highland
s t o c k , do not share
t h i s melancholy.
They a r e l e s s
h e l p l e s s because they a r e n o t plagued by the a n c i e n t
curse.
Margaret's mother l i v e s " l i k e a queen bee" (45), which
the p r e s e n t a t i o n o f h e r f a m i l y as a t i g h t - k n i t ,
re-enforces
i n d u s t r i o u s group.
Margaret h e r s e l f i s d e s c r i b e d a t one p o i n t as "warm, s a t i s f i e d
and
r e l a x e d as a c a t " (89), but t h i s i s t r u e o n l y p a r t o f the
time.
She a l s o has h e r f r u s t r a t i o n s
to h e r husband's s e l f - i m p o s e d
p a t i e n c e and u n d e r s t a n d i n g
and a n x i e t i e s , l a r g e l y due
isolation.
--qualities
Her q u a l i t i e s o f
she shares w i t h
Odysseus'
w a i t i n g w i f e - - g i v e h e r the s t r e n g t h to endure u n t i l D a n i e l
r e t u r n s and g i v e s h i m s e l f
fully
to h e r .
Margaret g i v e s i s o f a woman h a p p i e s t
and whose independent nature
The g e n e r a l
impression
i n h e r domestic
surroundings
g i v e s h e r the s t r e n g t h to endure
isolation.
On a more g e n e r a l
important
l e v e l i n the n o v e l , animal imagery i s
to the development o f both mood and meaning.
a s l e e p , Dr. A i n s l i e r e c o l l e c t s
wilderness,
a boyhood experience
Half-
i n the
and p a r t i c u l a r l y v i v i d i n h i s memory a r e the images
of a s t a g w i t h
"a s c a r on i t s r i g h t
shoulder
dead hawk w i t h
i t s eyes pecked o u t "
(72).
from combat" and "a
These memories a r e
- 55.
c l e a r examples
battle,
-
of how the s t r o n g ,
and even the s w i f t
t o o , may s u f f e r
and deadly p r e d a t o r may d i e
Elsewhere,
the d o c t o r , h a v i n g j u s t
courageous
than men, i s watched by a c a t
ironic
courageous
are a c c u s i n g .
and a s s o c i a t e d
Just after
of
"the u l t i m a t e
solitude"
v i s i o n when he imagines
eyes,
to s t i m u l a t e
(86).
One i s
him,
thoughts,
The c a t ' s eyes
Ainslie
i n him a
feeling
God, "a t i g h t - s k i n n e d dog w i t h
green
r i p p l i n g under i t s
tawny
reminded of Psalm x x i i , v e r s e 16,
"dogs
sword; my d a r l i n g from the
for A i n s l i e feels
in his
spoken an
This t i e s i n w i t h A i n s l i e ' s
have compassed me," and v e r s e 20,
psalm b e g i n s ,
ignobly.
He has
with c a t s .
s t a n d i n g b e f o r e him w i t h muscles
h i d e " (173-74).
the
(85).
b e i n g s t a r e d a t by the c a t ,
hears a dog h o w l i n g , which h e l p s
in
s a i d that women are f a r more
t r u t h , f o r he has not i n c l u d e d h i s wife
and she i s
injury
" D e l i v e r my s o u l
power of the d o g . "
from the
And i t
is
important
"My God, my God, why h a s t thou f o r s a k e n me?"
f o r s a k e n , and i s ,
" l o o k i n g f o r a God" (176).
as Mackenzie p o i n t s
H i s search i s
out
largely misdirected
and the consequences of i t s m i s d i r e c t i o n are foreshadowed
image accompanying A i n s l i e ' s e l a t i o n a t
in Alan,
an image of f a r - o f f g u l l s
there can be h e a r d "a r a t t l e
(131),
sounds
to
i n an
finding a substitute
screaming i n the
fog
of wings and a scrape o f
son
while
claws"
implying death.
Animal metaphors used to d e s c r i b e
i n c r e a t i n g mood and i n d i c a t i n g the
the landscape are
presence
o f opposing
The image of Cape B r e t o n I s l a n d h a v i n g a "shape
like
effective
forces.
the claws of a
lobster"
(50)
succeeds on two
whole scene being
the i n h a b i t a n t s
sea-creature,
levels.
submerged i n the
There i s a sense of
sea and
the
a l s o a sense t h a t
of t h i s land are h e l d i n the claws of a
predatory
imprisoned i n the v i s e - g r i p of some g i g a n t i c ,
mysterious f o r c e .
The
image of a f r i g h t e n i n g s e a - c r e a t u r e
is
s p e c i f i c a l l y a p p l i e d to the Broughton coal-mine, which i s d e s c r i b e
as having g a l l e r i e s " l i k e
The
the
f e e l i n g of the mine being
re-enforced
by
t e n t a c l e s of an o c t o p u s "
p a r t of a g i a n t organism i s
the image of a c o l l i e r y
a column of b l a c k ants that had
g i g a n t i c . p l a n t and
died
p a r t i n Each Man's Son
instance)
culminating
minutes of h i s l i f e ,
The
novel
there"
forward on
crawled up
(18).
the
Giants
and
the Cyclops,
begins w i t h the image of a g i a n t
the sea
that the
s t a l k of a
i n the
seeming "of more than human s i z e "
like
"The
(215).
that s e t s
late afternoon
sun"
shadow of the " g i a n t " l i e s a c r o s s
sea p l a y s an important r o l e i n the n o v e l .
the
sea i s connected w i t h a s t a t e of innocence.
a "sense of i r r e p a r a b l e l o s s " (45),
h i s y o u t h when he went to sea,
the
and
recalls
On
(15) .
It
the
sea,
one
level
Ainslie, feeling
r e c o l l e c t s the good days of
the
sense of freedom he
Then, the "whole w o r l d had
He
final
t h a t of a g i a n t r e s t i n g on h i s elbows
the
h i s f u t u r e " (46) .
for
shadow of a promontory l a y
for
experienced.
like
p l a y an i n t e g r a l
i n the p i c t u r e of A r c h i e ,
w i t h the back of h i s neck to the
i s notable
t r a i n t h a t "looked
(Giant M a c A s k i l l
tone f o r the whole work:
(18).
seemed too small
t h i s time of h i s youth twice
then
to hold
again,
- 57.
both times when he i s t a l k i n g
to A l a n (167 and
183),
he i s pushing h i s a m b i t i o n s .
On another
the sea i s used
level
on whom
as an image of u n c o n t r o l l a b l e and c o n s t a n t change.
Having
j u s t operated on A l a n and d e l i v e r e d him from death,
Ainslie
s i t s on a wharf, t r y i n g
to get a g r i p on h i s emotions:
the n o i s e of waves ebbing back and f o r t h around
filled
own
a l l space," and "he knew h i s mind was
rhythms and h i s body was
later,
trying
the f o o t of the c l i f f ,
pounding
out of c o n t r o l " (170) .
retreated,
and
overcome by h i s emotions,
the t i d e s .
and f i g h t s
i n the
darkness
When A i n s l i e i s
to c o n t r o l them, the
the
first
tide
L a t e r , when he makes c l e a r e r h i s f e e l i n g s - - h i s
turns and begins to r i s e a g a i n .
" l o n g diminuendo of the wave [travels]
t r a i n rumbling
of h i s mother--
At the same time the
away down the c o a s t l i k e
through a v a l l e y "
the rumbing t r a i n t h a t b r i n g s A r c h i e home.
resentment
little
They are l i k e
m i s p l a c e d a d u l a t i o n of h i s f a t h e r and resentment
a freight
A
The rhythms he senses deep w i t h i n
rhythmic c y c l e s of the waves and
the t i d e
with i t s
snored i n a g a i n w i t h
h i m s e l f are as o l d and m y s t e r i o u s as the sea.
ebbing.
the p i l i n g s
"Ground s w e l l s snored sombrely
p r i m e v a l rhythm" (174).
is
. .
to c l a r i f y h i s f e e l i n g s , A i n s l i e a g a i n becomes
aware of the sea:
at
".
(175),
foreshadowing
In e x p r e s s i n g h i s
of h i s mother f o r t h i n k i n g i t more important to eat
than to l e a r n and f o r l a c k i n g h i s f a t h e r ' s w i l l power, he
expresses
the source of h i s i n t e r n a l c o n f l i c t , which i s i t s e l f a major
reason f o r the c a t a s t r o p h i c r e s u l t s of A r c h i e ' s r e t u r n .
His
elevation
of
the course
l e a r n i n g over love i s a key f a c t o r
of
events.
There i s
of
another
the n o v e l , w h i c h ,
the s e a ,
i n determining
important image i n the opening paragraph
l i n k e d to that of
provides a c l u e
the
"giant's"
to the n o v e l ' s c e n t r a l
shadow on
theme:
"Facing
the sun over the water was a s e c o n d - q u a r t e r moon, white i n
c o b a l t mass of
sentences i s
the sky" (15).
a cluster
Given i n these two
opening
of images which are of g r e a t
importance.
W. H . Auden's i n t e r p r e t a t i o n of such images, a p p l i e d to
image i n Barometer R i s i n g , i s
the
even more a p p l i c a b l e
one
to these
in
Each Man's Son:
Sky as c o n t r a s t e d w i t h water (equals) S p i r i t as c o n t r a s t e d
w i t h n a t u r e . ' What comes from the sky i s a s p i r i t u a l . . .
visitation.
What l i e s h i d d e n i n the water i s the unknown
powers of n a t u r e .
Day and Sun [equal]
Consciousness
and the P a t e r n a l P r i n c i p l e
The g i a n t ' s shadow l i e s on the s e a ,
masking the unknown powers
nature but by no means n u l l i f y i n g them.
back to the
sun,
to the
benevolent f a t h e r .
sky w i t h i t ,
is
F a c i n g the
the
spirit,
sea
l i e s with
sun, and harmoniously s h a r i n g
it
soon appears
to c r e a t e the
tides.
i n the
The sky,
pp.
75-76.
the
novel,
region
principle)
p r i n c i p l e ) , works i n harmony w i t h the
T h e Enchafed F l o o d ,
his
(reason) and the
i n which are blended the sun (masculine
and the moon (feminine
5
of c o n s c i o u s n e s s
the moon, w h i c h , as
works c l o s e l y w i t h the
of
light
The g i a n t
of
sea,
- 59. r e g i o n of n a t u r e ' s powers, and a l l of these are opposed to the
g i a n t , whose f l a n k s are the bankheads of the c o l l i e r i e s which
loom " l i k e monuments i n a g i g a n t i c cemetery"
(50), and whose
bowels are the mines, which A i n s l i e c a l l s "a c o r r u p t i o n "
in
the core of Cape Breton I s l a n d .
may
be d i s t i l l e d
paragraph
the essence of the b a s i c o p p o s i t i o n of
f o r c e s i n the n o v e l :
the h e i g h t s and
From the opening
(70)
n a t u r a l and u n n a t u r a l ; l i g h t and
the depths; harmony and
darkness;
imbalance.
L i k e Barometer R i s i n g , Each Man's Son begins a t sunset.
Once again, an o p p o s i t i o n i s s e t up between l i g h t and
between the g l o r i o u s s e t t i n g
sun of June t i n t i n g
darkness,
the c l o u d s
and "below the c l o u d s the e a r t h . . . darkening f a s t "
(26).
the b r i g h t c l o u d s move eastward,
and
Margaret A i n s l i e
and f e e l s an i n c r e a s i n g
of
loneliness,
dark.
stands watching
As
the darkness grows,
sense
the same l o n e l i n e s s her husband f e e l s i n the
A l s o , because
i n the A i n s l i e garden both l i g h t and a i r
coming from the west a r e f r e s h , n e i t h e r having c r o s s e d a s i n g l e
colliery,
unnatural.
itself,
an o p p o s i t i o n appears between the n a t u r a l and
I n s e p a r a b l e from the c o l l i e r y
d e s c r i b e d i n n e g a t i v e terms:
the
i s the town of
Broughton
there i s a c o n s t r i c t i n g
"narrow main s t r e e t , " bordered by "lamp-posts
crooked and
raw,"
b e a r i n g i n c a n d e s c e n t l i g h t s which make "the pavement look b l u e
and naked," w h i l e the s t r e e t i s "swarming w i t h a i m l e s s p e o p l e "
(42).
These people know l i t t l e
of the l i g h t ,
most of whom spend " t h e i r days underground
the men
especially,
i n the dark" (48).
- 60. -
Opposed to the town proper i s the h o s p i t a l which
stands " l i k e a
l i g h t h o u s e over the whole town" (48), "the b e s t and s a f e s t p l a c e
i n the w o r l d " ( 5 3 ) .
The c o n f l i c t o f l i g h t and darkness i s a l s o
and made i n t e r n a l .
loneliness.
To Margaret,
individualized
the darkness r e p r e s e n t s
To D a n i e l , i t r e p r e s e n t s many t h i n g s .
w i t h MacKenzie about
g u i l t , he f i n d s
Having
spoken
the a n c i e n t c u r s e and i t s accompanying
" h i m s e l f s t a r i n g i n t o the t o t a l darkness.
His
s i n ? " (67) He s t a r e s i n t o the darkness and longs " f o r the s i g h t
of something
distinct"
(68).
What he i s l o o k i n g i n t o i s the
darkness o f h i s own mind, n o t h i s s i n , as he guesses, but that
p a r t o f h i s p e r s o n a l i t y he does n o t understand.
for
He longs both
"a f o r e s t i n t o which a man c o u l d d i s a p p e a r and l o s e h i m s e l f "
(68) and f o r a woman to mother him.
escape
His yearning i s r e a l l y f o r
to the innocence o f c h i l d h o o d , away from h i s s e l f - i n f l i c t e d
problems.
He dreams o f h i s boyhood, and h i s dream b r i n g s peace
of mind and an image o f a " r o s y - f i n g e r e d dawn" such as one f i n d s
i n Homer.
But t h i s does n o t , cannot, l a s t ,
the p a s t , which e l u d e s r e c a p t u r e .
f o r the dream i s o f
He i s i n t e l l i g e n t enough to
come to r e c o g n i z e t h a t he must probe h i s i n n e r darkness to r e a c h
the l i g h t .
ready.
But i t takes time and e x p e r i e n c e , and he i s not y e t
He steps toward
and share the p a t i e n t ' s
i t when he t h i n k s ,
fear.
"to go i n t o the dark
. . To become everybody
mother, c h i l d , and o l d man-- to become everyone
d o c t o r " (165).
--father,
i n o r d e r to be a
The s u g g e s t i o n i s t h a t the i n d i v i d u a l must know
the darkness which i s
himself.
i n everyman i n o r d e r to h e a l others and
A f t e r he hears M a c K e n z i e ' s r e v e l a t i o n about h i s
and mother, A i n s l i e s t a r e s
"out to a b l i n k of l i g h t
no more than a f a i n t
presence
b e g i n n i n g to see
t r u t h about h i m s e l f ,
to go,
the
as evidenced by h i s
A l a n and h i m s e l f ,
the way o f h i s a m b i t i o n to
reveals
the
of
rushes
He i s
but has some
distance
c o n f u s i o n of M o l l i e and h i s
mother,
that n o t h i n g w i l l stand
"help" A l a n .
"off i n t o
and going "out i n t o
scene t h a t
the
east,
in
L a t e r , when Margaret
to him the e x t e n t to which he has a l i e n a t e d M o l l i e ,
thoughtlessly
aside
i n the
i n the darkness" (176).
and the a s s e r t i o n
father
is
the
the n i g h t , " b r u s h i n g Margaret
the darkness" (198).
turning point i n h i s
t r u t h b e f o r e he makes an u t t e r
harm has been l o n g done,
he
and f o r c e s
This
life.
initiates
He has a v i s i o n
f o o l of h i m s e l f .
But the
are i n motion which he
cannot c o n t r o l .
If
place
the h o s p i t a l h i g h on the h i l l
i n the w o r l d , " a k i n d of p e a c e f u l
deep under the h i l l
is
"the b e s t and s a f e s t
paradise,
are something v e r y d i f f e r e n t .
l e a v i n g the h o s p i t a l a t one p o i n t ,
The heaven on the h i l l
A l s o a t work here i s
the sea and the c o l l i e r y ,
man-made h e l l
Ainslie,
The sulphurous
reminds one of f i r e and brimstone w i t h t h e i r u s u a l
h e l l underneath.
mines
s m e l l s "a w h i f f of s a l t
and of s u l p h u r from the c o l l i e r y " (86).
of h e l l and torment.
the
is
smell
associations
opposed to
tries
the
an o p p o s i t i o n between
the n a t u r a l and the man-made.
i s what A r c h i e
water
This
to escape from, but he
s i m p l y moves to another i n T r e n t o n , where
"the a i r was
like
- 62. c o t t o n wool t h a t had been dipped i n h o t d i s h w a t e r " (132).
Archie,
accustomed to the c o o l climes
beaten by the h e l l i s h heat of New
The
cool, clean northern
Daniel A i n s l i e
the d o c t o r
of the n o r t h ,
i s finally
Jersey.
a i r i s a p o s i t i v e element to
c h i e f l y because of i t s a n t i s e p t i c n a t u r e .
A talk
has w i t h a p a t i e n t r e v e a l s h i s b i a s , f o r the "quest
w i t h the p a t i e n t had taken h i s mind out of Cape Breton to a dark
grey coast
so c l e a n and pure that men, whose crops must r i s e out
of c o r r u p t i o n ,
could
s c a r c e l y grow a v e g e t a b l e on i t " (76).
His
a t t r a c t i o n to a land which i s so pure t h a t i t i s i n h o s p i t a b l e to
l i f e and h o s t i l e to human h a b i t a t i o n i s r e v e a l i n g of a b a s i c
ambivalence i n h i s p e r s o n a l i t y .
on h i s way w i t h people, r e v e r e s
Even so, f o r a l l h i s a d m i r a t i o n
is
often happiest
Louisburg,
sun,
The doctor,
who p r i d e s
himself
t h a t which i s a l i e n and inhuman.
for clarity
when h i s mind c l o u d s .
and p u r i t y , A i n s l i e
For instance, a t
when the f o g comes i n from the sea, b l o t t i n g out the
A i n s l i e grows e l a t e d t h i n k i n g of how he can "adopt" A l a n and
shape h i s l i f e :
"Nothing was v i s i b l e i n the f o g .
happiness grew" (130).
mental f o g clouds
And h i s
As the f o g obscures the sun, A i n s l i e s
1
h i s reason, g i v i n g r e i g n to h i s i r r a t i o n a l and
dangerous d e s i r e s w i t h o u t h i s having t o acknowledge i t .
There i s , i n the n o v e l ,
the
sun which can d i s p e l l
the
l i g h t of the moon.
the moonlight,
light,
another k i n d of l i g h t from that of
the darkness and g i v e a g e n t l e i l l u m i n a t i o n ;
Near the end of the n o v e l ,
t r y i n g to s o r t out h i s problems.
the whole w o r l d --even the mighty sea--
A i n s l i e walks i n
I n the mooni s a t peace.
-
D a n i e l looks
63.
-
i n t o a brook s p a r k l i n g w i t h m o o n l i g h t ,
and has a
sudden,
c l e a r and b r i l l i a n t v i s i o n of h i m s e l f as he r e a l l y
This i s
the moment of t r u t h .
along, waiting.
But the moon has been there
time,
like a h i l l
i n a semi-conscious
out to c a r e s s i t ,
"a f e a r l e s s c l a r i t y , " and "her
of snow under the moon" (46).
state,
a woman's h i p as golden as
Margaret" (59).
all
Margaret A i n s l i e i s more than once d e s c r i b e d
i n l u n a r terms; h e r eyes have
white body i s
is.
Another
D a n i e l A i n s l i e sees "the curve of
the h a r v e s t moon, but when he
the c o l o u r changed to white and i t
He reaches
f o r the
fecund but f i n d s
reached
was
it
chaste.
The m a t e r n a l p r i n c i p l e , t h a t which he r e j e c t s i n h i s mother,
Mollie,
and i n M a r g a r e t , hovers
the n o v e l u n t i l i t
has
the i n f l u e n c e
of the
of h i s nature
(his
(his mother).
sun ( h i s
at
the end.
l i g h t of day ( h i s
father),
unconscious)
and the
rejecting
influence
Ainslie
reason)
under
the n i g h t
side
o f the moon
But n a t u r e seeks a b a l a n c e .
The moon c o n t r o l s
As the n o v e l opens,
the g i a n t
i n the background throughout
f i n a l l y asserts i t s e l f
t r i e d to l i v e merely by the
in
the
the
tide
t i d e s of both the sea and the
i s moving i n ,
lapping at
personality.
the base o f
promontory, "breaking not many yards from J A l a n ' s j
f e e t " (15).
The t i d e moves up, and A l a n and h i s mother see
sudden lump of water a r c h out of
the s e a ,
shadow of the g i a n t ' s
shoulders,
its
so t h a t
them l i k e dark h o r s e s w i t h streaming
it
manes" (18).
[comes] a t
"a
l u r c h forward i n t o
c r e s t whipped by the
the
breeze
white
The wave tumbles A l a n ' s sand c a s t l e but leaves him
- 64.
a white
conch s h e l l ,
a shell
t h a t can "remember
c o n t a i n s the " o l d e s t sound i n the w o r l d "
the s e a , " t h a t
(20).
The s h e l l
speaks
w i t h the v o i c e of the sea of the g r e a t e t e r n a l c y c l e s of nature,
the c y c l e s of l i f e ,
of
death and r e b i r t h ,
d e s t r u c t i o n and r e s u r r e c t i o n .
of apocalypse
As A l a n ' s
sand
and
renewal,
c a s t l e f a l l s to
the f l o o d of the sea, so must the r e c l i n i n g g i a n t and a l l the
g i a n t r e p r e s e n t s --the o l d , v i o l e n t , b a r b a r i c ways and the
ancient curse that i s t h e i r
power.
source-- f a l l
and y i e l d
to a new
The n a t u r e of t h a t power i s foreshadowed i n the beauty of
the s h e l l and the way
i n which A l a n i s immediately
forgetting his fallen
sand
drawn to i t ,
castle.
L a t e r i n the n o v e l , MacLennan makes c l e a r i n A i n s l i e s
1
words to A l a n t h a t the powers of the sea (nature) and the sky
( s p i r i t ) a r e b e s t u n i t e d : "The sea, A l a n , i s the m i g h t i e s t
t h i n g we know.
The sky i s the most changeable
and m y s t e r i o u s . "
He speaks of the g r e a t c l i p p e r s h i p F l y i n g Cloud,
between sea and sky, and says, "Think
t h a t - - i t was
like
have g i v e n the world
of
Ainslie,
like
one h e r o i c i n d i v i d u a l .
f o l l o w i n g i d e a s of t h e i r
e v e r y t h i n g we v a l u e " (183).
own,
I t i s clear
c o n c e i v e s of h i m s e l f i n t h i s r o l e , but, i n the t u r m o i l
his frustration,
ambitions
of one man,
says, " I n d i v i d u a l men,
that A i n s l i e
of h a n d l i n g a s h i p
sail
t u r n i n g y o u r s e l f i n t o a f o r c e of n a t u r e ! " (183)
T h i s can be done by the genius
As A i n s l i e
setting
f e e l he cannot a t t a i n i t ,
on to A l a n .
having
thus pushing h i s
Dr. MacKenaie has seen the p o t e n t i a l i n
t o l d him, "with hands l i k e y o u r s , w i t h the
flair
you have, you c o u l d become one of the g r e a t surgeons o f
w o r l d " (70).
The surgeon, l i k e the s e a - c a p t a i n ,
between sea and s k y , u s i n g h i s
sets
the
sail
d e l i c a t e l y c o - o r d i n a t e d body and
mind to s t r i k e a balance which t u r n s him i n t o a h e a l i n g f o r c e .
And the g r e a t surgeons,
Ainslie
lives,
p a r t i c u l a r l y d u r i n g the time i n which
are making important advances i n s u r g i c a l techniques
d i s c o v e r i n g new and b e t t e r ways to h e a l .
discoverer,
Ainslie
is
such a
not l i k e the wise o l d D r . Mackenzie whose "mind was
one which understood r a t h e r than d i s c o v e r e d " (61).
must undergo h i s
But A i n s l i e
quest i n t o darkness before he can a c h i e v e
heroic greatness,
b e f o r e he can r e a l i z e h i s
destiny.
The melancholy C e l t s o f Cape B r e t o n g e n e r a l l y f e e l
d e s t i n y works a g a i n s t
against
all"
them; they f e e l
that
"the l u c k must have been
them, a s u p e r s t i t i o n which more or l e s s s a t i s f i e d
(140),
including A i n s l i e .
the a n c i e n t c u r s e ,
fate
them
T r u l y , w h i l e they s u f f e r under
does work a g a i n s t
d i s c o v e r s a son i n A l a n , he t h i n k s ,
them.
When A i n s l i e
" i t had not been a c c i d e n t
which had caused Doucette to c a l l him to L o u i s b u r g that day"
(125).
But what he f e e l s
f a t e working i n h i s
interest
is
o n l y the s t i r r i n g of h i s own misbegotten d e s i r e .
I f fate
is
work h e r e ,
fate
it
is
t h a t decrees
Archie MacNeil.
the o p p o s i t e o f what A i n s l i e
the f a l l
imagines,
o f the g i a n t a n d , hence,
The Cape B r e t o n g i a n t s ,
A r c h i e M a c N e i l , must f a l l
giants,
is
it
is
the f a l l
at
the
of
G i a n t M a c A s k i l l and
as s u r e l y as the legendary C e l t i c
F i n n McCool and F i n n G a l l ,
and t h e i r c l a s s i c a l c o u n t e r -
-
66.
p a r t s , the T i t a n s ( i n c l u d i n g the C y c l o p s ) , have f a l l e n .
As
Zeus and H i s Olympians t o p p l e d the T i t a n s , Odysseus the
and
S a i n t P a t r i c k the F i n n s , so w i l l
the g i a n t s of Cape
One
final
Cyclops,
the power of love t o p p l e
Breton.
image i s c e n t r a l l y important
o f the stream, brook or s p r i n g .
When A i n s l i e
A l a n , a sense of w e l l - b e i n g r i s e s i n him
water i n the s p r i n g " (120).
to the n o v e l , t h a t
is first
"like a r i l l
drawn to
of
There i s a r e a l s p r i n g on
p r o p e r t y , which i s s i g n i f i c a n t
fresh
Ainslie's
to t h i s d o c t o r of S c o t t i s h
heritage, for
W e l l s , s p r i n g s , streams, and pools have been a c c r e d i t e d w i t h
h e a l i n g powers wherever man has had a i l m e n t s to cure and
S c o t l a n d w i t h i t s numerous mountains and glens was famed more
than many o t h e r lands f o r h e a l i n g waters.
Long b e f o r e the
C h r i s t i a n e r a , s p r i n g s endowed w i t h m a g i c a l v i r t u e were
regarded as b r i n g e r s of h e a l t h from the h e a r t of the earth.6
These waters suggest, as do o t h e r water images, renewal
rebirth.
What D a n i e l A i n s l i e
b a l a n c e d , h e a l t h y mind and
climaxes
f i n a l l y achieves
spirit
and
is a well-
i n t h a t moment of epiphany which
the development of h i s c h a r a c t e r .
He
descends i n t o
the
dark depths of h i s p e r s o n a l i t y , sees there the e x t e n t of the
a n c i e n t c u r s e , and
d e s o l a t e landscape,
his l i f e
feels his s p i r i t
flicker
as he contemplates
i n a w o r l d where nothingness
l i k e a bat over a
the u t t e r f u t i l i t y
of
i s the u l t i m a t e t r u t h .
Then,
With a slow movement, as i f coming out o f a deep s l e e p ,
A i n s l i e s a t up and looked a t the sky. With l o n g i n g f o r continuance brimming i n h i s b l o o d , he had looked ahead on h i s
Mary Banks, B r i t i s h Calendar Customs, c i t e d i n F. M.
M c N e i l l , The S i l v e r Bough (Glasgow: W. MacLennan, 1957), p.
66.
days and seen t o t a l emptiness. He had reached h i s c o r e .
And
there he had stopped. He got to h i s f e e t and looked down a t
the brook.
In that moment he made the d i s c o v e r y that he was
ready to go on w i t h l i f e . (201-02)
He reaches h i s c o r e , where l i e s h i s w i l l
of
the f u t u r e .
torment o f hope.
of
not
life,
to l i v e
He reaches that peace found o n l y beyond
the
He sees i n the brook the c u r r e n t o f time and
e v e r - f r e s h , f o r e v e r renewing i t s e l f .
like Lister,
regardless
He knows he i s
O s i e r or Dougald MacKenzie, not one o f the
" b e a t i , secure i n t h e i r age and i n themselves" (203), but h i s
v e r y d i f f e r e n c e makes him c a p a b l e o f even g r e a t e r t h i n g s ; he
need but s e a r c h .
He i s s t i l l Unsure, but he has l e a r n e d the
v a l u e of l o v e , and may
clear
is
now
i n the n o v e l ' s f i n a l
emptied, A i n s l i e ' s
Barometer
develop h i s p o t e n t i a l .
image where, w h i l e MacKenzie's
i s untouched.
Rising, Daniel A i n s l i e
Murray's
glass
L i k e N e i l Macrae, i n
is left
f u t u r e , but h i s a t t i t u d e i s d i f f e r e n t
Macrae's.
This i s
l o o k i n g toward the
from the more romantic
The Cape Breton d o c t o r ' s a t t i t u d e i s , l i k e Dr. Angus
i n Barometer
R i s i n g , much more i r o n i c
than r o m a n t i c .
There a r e , i n Each Man's Son, obvious elements o f romance:
the
in
theme i s c h i e f l y argon or c o n f l i c t ;
the c h a r a c t e r s are c a s t
t y p i c a l r o l e s o f h e r o , w a i t i n g w i f e , wise o l d man
parent.
and
sinister
A l s o t y p i c a l o f romance i s the heavy r e l i a n c e on the
quest myth:
there a r e two quests i n the n o v e l .
a s i g n i f i c a n t d i f f e r e n c e from Barometer
But here
lies
R i s i n g , i n which the
quest myth i s a l s o c e n t r a l to the u n f o l d i n g of the s t o r y .
In the
- 68. -
l a t t e r novel,
the use o f the myth i s merely a comic one. I n
Each Man's Son, however, w h i l e A i n s l i e makes a comic quest, one
that f u l f i l l s
i t s aims and suggests the appearance o f a new
s o c i e t y , a quest w i t h i n a g r e a t e r
t i o n beyond the n o v e l , A r c h i e ' s
not
o n l y f a i l s to f u l f i l l
the hero and h i s w i f e .
quest which extends by i m p l i c a -
quest i s t r a g i c , a quest
i t s aims but ends i n the d e s t r u c t i o n o f
Beyond t h i s p a t t e r n ,
quests a r e l i n k e d together
that
the two separate
w i t h i n a g r e a t e r mythic c y c l e , the
death o f the o l d gods and the r i s e o f the new.
working behind the development o f the n o v e l
And f i n a l l y ,
as a whole i s t h a t
same f o r c e a t work i n Barometer R i s i n g , moira, n e c e s s i t y , the
i n t e r n a l balancing
he
o f the a n c i e n t
reaction.
and
c o n d i t i o n of l i f e .
The o l d j e a l o u s god,
c u r s e , has r e p r e s s e d
man's n a t u r e , f o r c i n g a
One r e a c t i o n puts too much s t r e s s on p h y s i c a l f o r c e
i d o l i z e s v i o l e n t f i g h t i n g strength,
i n e v i t a b l y r e s t o r e d and the hero
process.
The other
but a balance i s
( A r c h i e ) i s crushed i n the
r e a c t i o n i s to the o p p o s i t e
extreme, p u t t i n g
too much s t r e s s on the mental powers and denying the f l e s h , but
here, too, balance i s r e s t o r e d .
discovers
Ainslie
i s fortunate
i n t h a t he
f o r h i m s e l f how to escape the f a t e o f the o l d gods,
to c a s t a s i d e hope and f e a r , and simply
to l o v e .
A i n s l i e becomes
l i k e A l b e r t Camus' Sisyphus, j o y f u l i n the face o f h i s absurd
f a t e , a t once a c c e p t i n g
i t w i t h h i s sheer w i l l
balancing
point
i t w i t h s t o i c a l endurance and d e f y i n g
to s u r v i v e .
He has found the d e l i c a t e
t h a t i s the E p i c u r e a n
golden mean.
I n love i s
the b a l a n c e r e s t o r e d , as n e c e s s i t y demands:
and
sea,
sun and moon, sky
p a t e r n a l and m a t e r n a l , s p i r i t u a l and n a t u r a l , are
r e s o l v e d i n harmony.
The
novel
to A i n s l i e ,
ends w i t h
to A l a n and
this in sight.
The
to Canada i t s e l f
destiny
is s t i l l
unrealized.
L i k e Barometer R i s i n g , t h i s n o v e l begins a t sunset
the depths of n i g h t .
early f a l l ,
just
The
"heart of d a r k n e s s " s t i l l
for
the c h a r a c t e r s
Alan,
the
Sisyphus.
He has
the s p i r i t u a l son of
He
quest to make.
passed on;
ahead f o r these people, the new
i n the
War.
god has
s t o r y of a few
Daniel
i s Telemachus, son
But
son
of
the
regardless
of
l e s s o n of
of the
love
trials
r i s e n above the o l d .
i n d i v i d u a l men,
MacLennan has
made a prophecy o f the d e s t i n y i n s t o r e f o r h i s n a t i o n , and
prophecy i s o p t i m i s t i c .
in
Telemachus, son of Odysseus the wise,
been l e a r n e d and w i l l be
Once a g a i n ,
of the F i r s t World
i s a l s o Odysseus h i m s e l f ,
h i s own
ends i n
the f u t u r e i s c o n t a i n e d
i s each man's son.
but more than t h i s he
has
But
p h y s i c a l son of A r c h i e and
Odysseus the mighty, and
ends i n
l i e s ahead f o r the n a t i o n , i f not
i n the n o v e l .
A i n s l i e ; c l e a r l y he
and
I t begins i n e a r l y summer and
p r i o r to the b e g i n n i n g
promised
the
Chapter Four:
The Watch That Ends the N i g h t :
The Comic S y n t h e s i s
The v e r y t i t l e
an important
day,
o f The Watch t h a t Ends the N i g h t
o p p o s i t i o n between l i g h t and darkness,
s i m i l a r to t h a t found
p o i n t s to
n i g h t and
i n Barometer R i s i n g and Each Man's Son.
In t h i s n o v e l , the c o n f l i c t o f f o r c e s i s examined to a depth o n l y
hinted at before.
The c o n f l i c t
i s focused on the c e n t r a l
c h a r a c t e r o f the n o v e l , George Stewart,
and i s worked out i n the
development o f h i s c h a r a c t e r .
When the n o v e l b e g i n s , George i s a t peace.
late winter.
The time
l i g h t and darkness,
i s sunset,
The season i s
s t a n d i n g between day and n i g h t ,
t h a t time when the u n i v e r s e seems m y s t e r i o u s l y
to h o l d i t s b r e a t h .
As George says, the "pale t w i l i g h t
the c i t y e r a s e d time:
bathing
i t c a l l e d me back to the Montreal
once had been one o f the t r u e w i n t e r c i t i e s
which
o f the w o r l d . "
It
c a l l s him back t o the days when he " f e l t young and c l e a n and
u n t r o u b l e d , " a time
live
t h a t "was gone now t h a t we were l e a r n i n g to
l i k e New Y o r k e r s . " !
simple
The o p p o s i t i o n i s g i v e n here between a
past and a c o m p l i c a t e d ,
s o p h i s t i c a t e d present.
An o p p o s i t i o n
a l s o appears between w i l d e r n e s s and c i t y , n a t u r a l and man-made,
when George looks a t "the c l e a n , n o r t h e r n t w i l i g h t f e e l i n g
and
relaxed" (7).
George l i k e s
easy
to l e t h i s mind escape from the
b u s t l e o f the c i t y , and f i n d s t h i s e a s i e s t a t dusk and a t dawn,
f o r he f e e l s t h a t n o t h i n g i s " q u i t e l i k e
the s i l e n c e o f a n o r t h e r n
iRugh MacLennan, The Watch t h a t Ends the Night (New York:
New American L i b r a r y , 1960), p. 7. A l l subsequent q u o t a t i o n s
from the n o v e l a r e from t h i s e d i t i o n and a r e f o l l o w e d by page
r e f e r e n c e s i n parentheses.
c i t y a t dawn on a w i n t e r morning" ( 7 ) .
To George, the w i n t e r w i l d e r n e s s
contrasted with
i s a positive
world
the modern c i t y which n e g a t i v e l y r e f l e c t s the
i n f l u e n c e o f man's i n v e n t i o n s on h i s l i f e .
rush-hour t r a f f i c
Looking a t the
(he p r e f e r s to w a l k ) , he says,
"Sherbrooke
S t r e e t looked l i k e an army i n r e t i r e m e n t " (21).
Shortly after
t h i s , he coments on another
"like a dentist'
drill
the telephone
political
work o f t e c h n o l o g y :
s n a r l e d a t me" (36).
Man-made t h i n g s ,
i d e o l o g i e s as w e l l as machines, a r e o f t e n g i v e n
negative a t t r i b u t e s .
get out o f c o n t r o l .
George i s bothered
by the way such
things
He sees man b l i t h e l y s e t t i n g f o r c e s i n
motion which a l l too o f t e n assume a m i n d l e s s momentum o f t h e i r
own, sometimes t h r e a t e n i n g to d e s t r o y him u t t e r l y .
But, t o
George, where man has n o t meddled, the w o r l d remains
uncorrupt.
He i s r e f r e s h e d by the c o l d w i n t e r a i r which has "come down from
the germless,
sinless
l a n d " (24).
D a n i e l A i n s l i e o f Each Man's Son.
harsh, uncorrupt
In t h i s , George i s l i k e
Where A i n s l i e approves o f the
Newfoundland landscape,
George r e m i n i s c e s
p o s i t i v e l y about a boyhood canoe t r i p on the Great Lakes where
"the days were a s t r i n g e n t and the n i g h t s were c o l d " (51).
finally
states h i s feeling e x p l i c i t l y ,
He
describing a "beautiful,
c o l d s k i e r ' s morning i n the innocent n o r t h l a n d , " which leads him
to
say, "to be young . . . to be innocent o f l i f e
. . . were
v e r y heaven.'" (318)
George's f e e l i n g s toward the w i l d e r n e s s a r e , however,
ambivalent.
While i t serves as a place o f escape from the c i t y
and o f i s o l a t i o n
from the busy confused world, i t i s a l s o
f r i g h t e n i n g i n i t s greatness.
Canoeing
on a s i l e n t
rather
lake w i t h
Jerome M a r t e l l , George becomes aware that "the s i l e n c e went a
thousand m i l e s to Hudson Bay"
(149).
L a t e r , George s i t s
i n s i l e n c e s t a r i n g a t the landscape which s t a r e d back:
form
and c o l o u r and l i g h t and shade, u s e l e s s to farmers, some o f
the o l d e s t rock i n the world c r o p p i n g out of i t , dark green
and l i g h t green, a n c i e n t , m i n d l e s s , from e v e r l a s t i n g to everl a s t i n g without any purpose anyone c o u l d p o s s i b l y understand,
but t h e r e . (247)
As he says o u t r i g h t ,
"Jerome l o v e d the s t a r k grandeur
L a u r e n t i a n S h i e l d which evoked
called
out i n me,
a response i n him
of the
i t has
f o r I p r e f e r a g e n t l e r l a n d where f l o w e r s
and
f r u i t s grow" (252).
his
l i k i n g , a garden
his
one y o u t h f u l summer w i t h C a t h e r i n e .
A g e n t l e r p a s t o r a l l a n d i s more to
l a n d such as the " a r c a d i a " he enjoyed i n
He yearns f o r t h i s
i d y l l i c Eden, l o s t when he became aware o f h i s p h y s i c a l
" I f c h i l d h o o d i s a garden," he says, "The
desire:
then
A paradise
i t i s , a l o s s he mourns u n t i l he reaches h i s t r u e manhood
near the end o f the n o v e l .
his
lost
gates c l o s e d on us
and ever a f t e r w a r d s we were on the o u t s i d e " (58).
lost
never
dream, but, unable
as an escape,
to f i n d
A r e t u r n to t h i s
garden world i s
to f u l f i l l h i s dream, he uses
i n the c o l d , b a r r e n s i l e n c e
the w i l d e r n e s s
temporary
peace.
George's f i n d i n g peace i n w i n t e r c o l d and s i l e n c e and
the
w i l d e r n e s s , or w h i l e the c i t y s l e e p s , t e l l s us much about h i s
character.
He
f i n d s peace without people, without t h e i r n o i s e ,
b u s t l e and c o n f u s i o n .
H i s form o f peace i s the p a r t i a l ,
inadequate
- 73. -
peace of a r e c l u s e , a peace found i n i s o l a t i o n from the human
community i n a d e n i a l of h i s p l a c e i n the l i f e
of mankind.
Such
a peace he enjoys when the n o v e l opens, but i t i s q u i c k l y
s h a t t e r e d by a telephone
the window and
call
from Jerome.
sees the e n c r o a c h i n g
down over the snow w i t h i t s s q u i r r e l
George looks out
"darkness
visibly
t r a c k s " (11).
flooding
The
gentle
George f e e l s as h e l p l e s s as a s q u i r r e l a t the mercy of f o r c e s
g r e a t e r than he can understand.
Night has
begun.
N i g h t , to George, means c o n f u s i o n and
the d e p r e s s i o n y e a r s , he remembers w a l k i n g
a f t e r midnight:
blowing
"The moon had
scraps o f paper and
terror.
Recollecting
the M o n t r e a l
sunk and a r i s i n g wind
d u s t " (124).
was
In t h i s dark
r e m i n i s c e n t of the dark and dingy n i g h t scene of T. S.
" P r e l u d e s " , George has a v i s i o n of the abyss,
in his l i f e :
I saw
the bottom h o l e of my
then - - i t i s one
see-- my
himself:
and
" I t was
own
worthlessness."
He
"I s t a r e d a l l the way
Eliot's
nothingness
l i f e up to t h a t time.
glimpses
the darkness
within
down t h a t b l e a k , empty s t r e e t
seemed to be s t a r i n g i n t o the r e c e s s e s of my
night " f u l l
scene,
of the most t e r r i b l e t h i n g s anyone can
Much l a t e r i n the n o v e l and
in
the
streets
i n h i s l i f e , he
own
imagines
soul"
(125).
Catherine's
of p a i n , of f e a r , of tumbling down unknown t u n n e l s
the e n d l e s s d a r k "
" o n l y the f e a r f u l
n i g h t and darkness
(318).
And
f o r C a t h e r i n e ' s f u t u r e he
t u n n e l w i t h n o t h i n g a t the end"
c o n t a i n chaos, meaningless
t h i s w o r l d of darkness
people are " l o s t
like
(320).
sees
The
c o n f u s i o n , and i n
shadows moving
- 74. -
p e r i l o u s l y over a c r u s t c o v e r i n g the v o i d : (265), one s t e p
falling
to drown i n the dark.
George nears
f e e l s he i s going to l o s e C a t h e r i n e .
from
t h i s p o i n t when he
With C a t h e r i n e i n h o s p i t a l
c l o s e to d y i n g , George d e s c r i b e s h i m s e l f a l o n e i n bed, s h i v e r i n g
with fear, while
"the darkness
descended and the ocean r o s e "
(332).
The
image o f the ocean i s used o f t e n i n The Watch That
Ends the Night and i n many d i f f e r e n t ways.
Most important, the
ocean i s used as an image o f the mind and o f time.
e a r l i e s t r e f e r e n c e s to the ocean l i n k s both
George f e e l s
The past i s an ocean t o be r e v i v e d i n the
ocean o f the c h a r a c t e r s ' memories.
George.
fully
the mind and time:
t h a t Jerome " w i l l b r i n g up a l l the ocean out o f
the p a s t " (30).
to
One o f the
T h i s ocean i s f r i g h t e n i n g
As he says when he has d e c i d e d to commit h i m s e l f
to l o v i n g C a t h e r i n e , "Now I , too, was a t sea and I
thought
o f t h a t v a s t r e s e r v o i r o f emotions and memories o f
which every f r a g i l e human l i f e
a Mindinao
floats until
the depth becomes
j^sicj Deep so profound he cannot plumb i t " (296).
ocean o f the mind t h r e a t e n s even t h a t f r a g i l e c o n s c i o u s
which appears
self
on the s u r f a c e , t h r e a t e n s i t l i k e
the e x t e r n a l
ocean o f time o r the sea o f h i s t o r y which r i s e s
to f l o o d the
w o r l d w i t h v i o l e n c e and d e s t r u c t i o n .
During the Second World
War, George says, h i s " p r i v a t e l i f e almost
drowned i n what
seemed to be the d i s i n t e g r a t i o n o f the w o r l d i t s e l f "
But
Th
(296).
t h i s ocean can be b e n e f i c e n t , t o o ; f o r example, i t can h e a l
an i n j u r y as bad C a t h e r i n e ' s l o s s o f Jerome:
Catherine's
"love f o r Jerome had gone down l i k e a wounded l i v i n g t h i n g
to
the f l o o r o f the sea and time had covered i t , the deep
t i m e " (301).
The use o f the sea as a metaphor f o r time i s a l s o
sometimes s p e c i f i c a l l y focused on the passage o f a day or o f
a person's
rising
life.
in full
George d e s c r i b e s one "August morning . . .
t i d e " (51).
George h i s f i r s t
Elsewhere,
when C a t h e r i n e
offers
s e x u a l e x p e r i e n c e , he sees h e r "as q u i e t l y
r e s t l e s s as a q u i e t s e a " (75), but he denies h e r and h i s own
desire.
He i s a f r a i d .
Much l a t e r , however, s i t t i n g
C a t h e r i n e a f t e r t h e i r r e u n i o n , he senses
in
the t i d e o f h e r l i f e , " and he f e e l s
The
is
"her b r e a t h i n g
presence
" l i k e a man come home" (129).
g r e a t t i d a l ocean i s a s s o c i a t e d i n t h i s n o v e l , as i t
i n Each Man's Son, w i t h the moon.
f o r c e throughout
and
with
the mind.
The moon i s a c o n t r o l l i n g
n a t u r e , i n f l u e n c i n g the ocean, the human body
Images o f the moon appear a t many
important
moments i n the n o v e l , when emotion i s a t i t s h i g h e s t .
young George and C a t h e r i n e a r e b l i s s f u l l y
When the
i n l o v e , the s i g n i f i c a n t l y
"moonless n i g h t s were as s o f t as warm m i l k " (62 , i t a l i c s
mine).
T h i s g i v e s a sense o f an i n n o c e n t c h i l d a t i t s mother's b r e a s t ,
warmed by a mother's h e a t .
and C a t h e r i n e e x p e r i e n c e
h u n t e r ' s moon."
The t i d e s o f d e s i r e r i s e , and George
their f i r s t
kiss
"on the n i g h t o f a
The moon stood over the l a k e , and "there i t
hung w i t h a r i n g g l i t t e r i n g about i t and dominated the w o r l d "
(63).
The h u n t e r ' s moon reminds one o f the goddess Diana,
the chaste
h u n t r e s s , e s p e c i a l l y as C a t h e r i n e i s s t i l l
chaste.
As the
"hunter's moon s t a r e d down," George n o t i c e d t h a t " f a r out i n
the channel were the r i d i n g l i g h t s o f a moving s h i p " ( 6 4 ) .
There i s a h i n t here o f a j o u r n e y by water - - a c r o s s the ocean
of
time and the unconscious-- and t h a t such moments as t h i s a r e
f l e e t i n g , c a r r i e d away q u i c k l y by the c u r r e n t .
And so i t
happens: "The moon c o n t i n u e d to s t a r e down on us . . . u n t i l a t
l a s t a wandering
c l o u d covered the moon and the lake gave a
s h i v e r and went d a r k " (66).
the lake i s darkened,
fulfilled
a little
The moon i s h i d d e n from the c o u p l e ,
g i v i n g a sense o f f o r e b o d i n g which i s
l a t e r when George s p o i l s
their
relationship.
The weather has changed f o r the worse when the couple meets
a g a i n ; George has l o s t h i s innocence but i s s t i l l
of
h i s childhood.
not free
He denies the t i d a l demands o f the f l e s h - - i s
a f r a i d o f them-- and a t the same time denies h i m s e l f the r i g h t
to
Catherine.
Years l a t e r , when George i s about
to meet h i s
love a g a i n , there i s a p r o p h e t i c "hunter's moon over the c i t y "
(123).
Having met C a t h e r i n e , he n o t i c e s moonlight
the darkened windows o f a c h u r c h " (131).
"flicker off
The r e l i g i o n the church
r e p r e s e n t s i s dead to him, but the moon c o n t i n u e s to a s s e r t
itself.
The moon i s f o r e v e r p r e s e n t , i f n o t i n the sky, i n the
c h a r a c t e r o f C a t h e r i n e , f o r she, l i k e Margaret A i n s l i e
i n Each
Man's Son, i s o f t e n d e s c r i b e d i n l u n a r terms.
When, i n t h e i r youth, George and C a t h e r i n e walk i n the
moonlight,
George t h i n k s "of h e r as a whiteness
o f the dusk"
(58).
L a t e r , when Jerome i s d e p a r t i n g f o r Spain, he sees her
as "serene,
life,
p a l e and b e a u t i f u l " (261).
i n her
j u s t p r i o r to the l a s t embolism which p r e c i p i t a t e s the
climax, George notes
C a t h e r i n e ' s " s m a l l curved f a c e p a l e ,
(311), h i n t i n g of a waning moon.
and wanes l i k e
to
Later s t i l l
the moon.
C a t h e r i n e ' s very
And she s i l e n t l y
George which he does n o t see u n t i l v e r y
calm"
l i f e waxes
offers
something
l a t e i n the n o v e l .
F i n a l l y a t peace w i t h h i m s e l f , George says, "my s o u l was l i k e a
landscape w i t h water when the f o g goes and the moon comes out
all
the promontories
long l a s t a c c e p t s
a r e c l e a r and s t i l l "
(346) .
George a t
the moon, f u l l y a c c e p t s C a t h e r i n e , and f i n a l l y
sees h e r as she r e a l l y i s ; of h e r f a c e , he says, " L i g h t was i n
it.
L i g h t came out of i t . L i g h t came from h e r c o n s t a n t l y i n t o me"
(348) .
But, i f C a t h e r i n e on one l e v e l r e p r e s e n t s the powers of
the moon (the m a t e r n a l
mysterious
p r i n c i p l e and the m i s t r e s s of the
powers of n a t u r e ) , she a l s o r e p r e s e n t s a g r e a t d e a l
more.
The f i r s t
time young George sees C a t h e r i n e i n the n o v e l ,
"she was a l l d r e s s e d i n g r e e n "
(50), and he l a t e r says
that
"green was her c o l o u r a t t h a t supreme moment of my y o u t h " ( 5 2 ) .
Later i n l i f e ,
George d e s c r i b e s C a t h e r i n e ' s p a i n t i n g which i s
c l o s e s t to a s e l f - p o r t r a i t :
"simply a l l the young g i r l s
i t i s of a young g i r l ,
there ever were l o s t i n a spectrum of
s p r i n g and knowing themselves a l o n e .
f l o w e r on a s t a l k " (308) .
featureless,
The head drooped l i k e a
These a s s o c i a t i o n s of C a t h e r i n e w i t h
nature do n o t stand a l o n e .
F o r i n s t a n c e , the seasons
f o l l o w h e r e a r l y r e l a t i o n s h i p w i t h George.
seem to
About to deny
C a t h e r i n e and l e a v e h e r f o r a long time, George says he " c o u l d
almost hear
the v o i c e o f w i n t e r " (74).
And w i n t e r does come;
" I n d i a n Summer was over, and w i t h i t my time i n A r c a d i a " ( 6 7 ) .
The
p a s t o r a l Eden, the summer he has spent w i t h C a t h e r i n e , i s
over, but George does n o t want to a c c e p t i t s p a s s i n g ; hence, he
fails
C a t h e r i n e by b e i n g too f e a r f u l
He has l o s t h i s c h i l d h o o d innocence
maturity.
to respond
to h e r advance.
but i s a long way from
He denies n a t u r e , f o r which nature
he d e r i v e s a m a s o c h i s t i c p l e a s u r e from
punishes him, and
the punishment:
"the
wind t e a r i n g my h a i r and the r a i n l a s h i n g my face were g r a t e f u l "
(76).
Many years l a t e r , when he and C a t h e r i n e a r e m a r r i e d ,
George r e t u r n s to a p a r t i a l acceptance
t h a t happiness
it
o f nature.
He e x p l a i n s
" d i d n o t come t o C a t h e r i n e and me i n a rush; r a t h e
grew l i k e summer weather a f t e r a c o o l s p r i n g i n a n o r t h e r n
l a n d " (300), and t h a t t o g e t h e r they "grew i n t i m a t e w i t h the
seasons"
(301).
George's d e s c r i p t i o n o f C a t h e r i n e ' s i n f l u e n c e
reminds one o f Jerome s a y i n g "the f i r s t
two years w i t h h e r
the world opened up l i k e a r o s e " (157).
This c l o s e a s s o c i a t i o n
of
p a r a l l e l s the
C a t h e r i n e w i t h nature and the seasons
p e r s o n i f i c a t i o n o f the year i n MacLennan's essay,
"Portrait of a
Year": i n
May . . . she e n t e r e d l i k e a supple g i r l o f p e r f e c t deportment,
yet one who knew what she wanted and how to get i t , and the
most d e l i c a t e shades o f green became h e r w e l l .
-
79.
. . . i n September . . . the bones of her face showed f i n e
aristocratic.
By October she was a g r e a t lady knowing her
l i f e had been so f u l l she c o u l d a f f o r d to be serene, wise,
t h o u g h t f u l and remembering.
This p e r s o n i f i e d year speaks to the a u t h o r , s a y i n g ,
w i t h me
and
be my
love and we
This i s what C a t h e r i n e
and
w i l l a l l the
offers f i r s t
then to George a g a i n .
and
"Come l i v e
pleasures
prove.
to George, then to Jerome,
MacLennan's d e s c r i p t i o n of a
year's
passage, h i s p e r s o n i f i c a t i o n o f the c y c l e of the seasons, bears
a c l o s e resemblance to the broad o u t l i n e s of
character.
She
artist,
i s "ambitious,"
she
i n her c o r e "
(249)
Her
and
i s green i n youth, and
(26), and
she ages g r a c e f u l l y .
" r u t h l e s s , " and
"strangely
s i g n i f i c a n t l y she both " l o v e s
i s a p e r f e c t i o n i s t a t i t , an a r t i s t
of the
She
gardening"
garden.
i s of a r i s t o c r a t i c b e a r i n g ;
c o u l d t h i n k of C a t h e r i n e
year, her
as
queen-like"
time i s l i m i t e d , and her
a larger cycle.
which i s "her
on r e g a r d l e s s .
But her
(26).
and
in fact,
Like
the
l i f e moves i n c y c l e s w i t h i n
i n e f f a b l e , unconquerable s p i r i t ,
s t r e n g t h , her
that
essence, her mystery" (26), c a r r i e s
A f t e r each scrape w i t h
death she
revives.
It is
not c o i n c i d e n t a l t h a t George, going
to the h o s p i t a l to' f i n d
Catherine
the c a b - d r i v e r
was
i s recovering,
almost over and
As
solitary
face i s f i n e - f e a t u r e d , "heart-shaped, l a r g e grey eyes
s e n s i t i v e mouth" (26).
"you
Catherine's
i s t o l d by
t h a t s p r i n g , she was
Scotchman's Re t u r n , pp.
259-60
"that
coming f o r s u r e "
that
winter
(3'32).
an
- 80. -
When he does 1 e a r n that C a t h e r i n e w i l l
l i v e , he suddenly becomes
aware t h a t the seasons a r e changing, w i n t e r y i e l d i n g to s p r i n g .
(346)
of
the
Catherine's ' s p i r i t , l i k e
unconquerable
tidal
t h a t o f n a t u r e , i s the seed
l i f e w i t h i n her.
Her f a t e i s l i k e
that of
s e a , the changing moon, the s e a s o n a l v e g e t a t i o n , and
is reflected
i n h e r heart-shaped f a c e .
George comments t h a t
a "rheumatic h e a r t i s f a t e p a l p a b l e and u n a v o i d a b l e " ( 8 ) , and,
during Catherine's l a s t
embolism, he says t h a t "the image o f h e r
f a c e " haunted him and that "the f e e l i n g o f h e r body melted
mine so warm and c l o s e t h a t the n i g h t throbbed" (296).
into
The
t h r o b b i n g o f h e r h e a r t becomes a t h r o b b i n g i n the n i g h t ,
pulsing
as the moon, m i s t r e s s o f the n i g h t and the t i d e s , s l o w l y p u l s e s ,
as the y e a r l y seasons
but he w i l l
pulse.
George i s haunted by i t , f e a r s i t ,
l e a r n to a c c e p t i t .
The moon s h i n e s over more c h a r a c t e r s than George and C a t h e r i n e .
Jerome i s born i n i t s l i g h t ,
i f not a c t u a l l y , c e r t a i n l y
symbolically.
D e s c r i b i n g h i s mother's murder, Jerome says he "saw moonlight
p o u r i n g i n t o the k i t c h e n i n t h r e e s e p a r a t e s h a f t s " (167).
F o l l o w i n g the murder, he runs out i n t o the moonlight,
and l a t e r ,
afraid,
as he escapes down-river i n h i s canoe ( s t i l l t h r e a t e n e d
by h i s mother's m u r d e r e r ) ,
"the moon was enormous i n the wide
g r e e n l y - s h i n i n g s k y " (174).
and s y m b o l i c a l l y Jerome s t i l l
There i s sense o f submersion h e r e ,
i s submerged, f o r he has n o t y e t
been born.
Jerome's n a t u r a l mother c o u l d have stepped s t r a i g h t out a
myth.
Her r e a l name i s obscure, but the "men c a l l e d h e r 'Anna'
or'Mrs. Anna'" (162).
The name "Anna" has been g i v e n to
numerous goddesses i n a n c i e n t m y t h o l o g i e s , and the word
itself
descends from an Indo-European r o o t the meaning o f which i s
a s s o c i a t e d w i t h "mother".
The goddess named Anna or h a v i n g
v a r i a t i o n s o f t h a t name (e.g., Roman Anna Perenna o r Greek Urana)
is
g e n e r a l l y an e a r t h goddess or mother goddess l i n k e d to
c r e a t i o n and f e r t i l i t y .
and
She i s , however, a l s o l i n k e d to death
d e s t r u c t i o n , f o r i t i s o f h e r d u a l nature to both g i v e and
take away.
As the mother e a r t h g i v e s l i f e
summer, she takes i t i n f a l l
whole year ( L a t i n annus:
as
the mother o f a l l
and w i n t e r :
year).
chaos to take form as the e a r t h .
she i s a goddess o f the
She i s g e n e r a l l y worshipped
things, l i k e
Olympian C r e a t i o n Myth, a r i s i n g
i n s p r i n g and
the Mother E a r t h o f the
( m y s t e r i o u s l y unengendered) from
Jerome's mother, Anna,
closely
resembles such a goddess; no-one i n the l o g g i n g camp knows where
she
has come from.
She speaks l i t t l e .
She i s a " s h o r t , square,
powerful woman" (162), a s t a t u r e reminding one o f p r i m i t i v e
c l a y r e p r e s e n t a t i o n s o f the mother goddess.
woman" i n the camp" (163).
She i s "the p r i n c i p a l
She has a simple and p r i m i t i v e n a t u r e ,
s p o r a d i c a l l y and i n d i s c r i m i n a t e l y g i v i n g h e r s e x u a l
to
favours
the men o f the camp, and i s tough and r u t h l e s s i n demanding
s a t i s f a c t i o n from these men.
She r e p r e s e n t s the h a r s h , b r u t a l but
b a s i c and n e c e s s a r y powers o f n a t u r e .
She i s the g r e a t mother.
Jerome's a d o p t i v e mother i s a new k i n d o f woman to him.
Of
- 82. -
the two M a r t e l l ' s ,
woman was
the s t r o n g e r . . . y e t
u t t e r l y d i f f e r e n t from h i s mother.
and g e n t l e and
mystery,
"the woman was
still
she was
s t r o n g " (193).
She was
She
civilized,
She
is s t i l l
Christianized.
lack
little
the mother goddess, but the goddess
Where Jerome's n a t u r a l mother i s "as
p o s s e s s i v e as a female bear w i t h a cub"
" l i k e a g e n t l e b i r d " (189).
(163), Mrs M a r t e l l i s
The c o n t r a s t i s l i k e
c o n t r a s t between w i l d e r n e s s and garden.
between the n a t u r a l and
s o f t , warm
does not
however, f o r she i s d e s c r i b e d as a "strange
p e r s o n " (189).
this
George's
It is like
the man-made i d e a l :
the c o n t r a s t
w h i l e Anna i s
c o n t e n t w i t h , and r e i g n s i n , the p r i m i t i v e , ambivalent w i l d e r n e s s ,
a l a n d both h a r s h and b e a u t i f u l , Mrs. M a r t e l l l i v e s
in a
and c a s t s her thoughts
visualizes
as an A r c a d i a n garden
to f a r - o f f England which she
city
of C h r i s t i a n Eden on e a r t h , "the most
b e a u t i f u l and wonderful
c o u n t r y i n the w o r l d , and
the k i n g l i v e s "
Jerome d i s c o v e r s , l i k e N e i l Macrae i n
(199).
i t ' s where
Barometer R i s i n g , t h a t t h i s p a s t o r a l p a r a d i s e does not
exist,
t h a t the r e a l w o r l d i s h a r s h e r than a c o l o n i a l ' s dreams would
have i t .
While
Jerome's n a t u r a l mother i s the o r i g i n a l ,
primitive
mother o f d u a l n a t u r e , then, h i s a d o p t i v e mother i s the
more human mother.
When C a t h e r i n e m a r r i e s Jerome, she
over t h i s g e n t l e , p r o t e c t i n g r o l e .
this,
protective,
takes
But she g i v e s him more than
f o r she b r i n g s to him her o t h e r mythic a t t r i b u t e s , her
a f f i n i t y w i t h n a t u r e and
the moon.
What Robert
Graves c a l l s
the
- 83. -
White Goddess, t h a t i s ,
the moon goddess, takes three major
forms, r e p r e s e n t i n g the three major phases the moon passes
through; maiden
(newly waxing), nymph ( l a t e waxing, f u l l , and newly
waning), and crone ( l a t e waning and d a r k ) .
of
these forms.
chaste l i k e
When George f i r s t
C a t h e r i n e takes two
knows h e r , she i s a maiden,
the goddess Diana. During t h i s time, she matures,
e v i d e n t i n George's d e s c r i p t i o n o f h e r "coming out o f the lake
when she was e i g h t e e n w i t h the summer water streaming o f f h e r
s h o u l d e r s and t h i g h s " (44), an image p a r a l l e l
Aphrodite r i s i n g
to that o f
from the sea (the b i r t h o f Venus).
Aphrodite
r e p r e s e n t s the moon goddess i n h e r nymph phase, the p o s i t i v e
nymph, she o f s p r i n g and summer, o f f e r t i l i t y
and c r e a t i o n .
But
there i s another a s p e c t o f the nymph; she o f the waning moon, who
r
draws toward the cone, she o f darkness and death.
Like
Circe
A
of
and
the S i r e n s i n the Odyssey, she should be approached w a r i l y
o n l y by one w i t h knowledge o f h e r d u a l n a t u r e .
Blackwell c l e a r l y f i l l s
t h i s r o l e f o r Jerome.
love f o r Jerome makes h e r a p o s i t i v e f i g u r e ,
Norah
On one hand h e r
l e a d i n g George to
d e s c r i b e h e r as "a f l o w e r which had opened a f t e r a long
(257).
But t h i s same b l i n d
frost"
love a l s o makes h e r a n e g a t i v e
f i g u r e , f o r i t leads h e r to d e s e r t h e r husband and causes much
unhappiness.
Her nature t r u l y does c o n t a i n a "black w e l l , " as
George notes when he sees h e r on board s h i p w i t h Jerome, bound
for
Spain:
" t h a t woman's head had come by s t e a l t h , had come under
the
t e r r i b l e compulsion o f the d e s t r u c t i v e power w i t h i n h e r "
- 84.
(264).
who
She
-
i s t h a t form o f nymph - - i n f a c t , a nymphomaniac--
i s l e d to her d e s t r u c t i o n by her own
the hero w i t h h e r .
Her
fate,
d e s i r e , and would
l i k e her v o i c e , i s C o r d e l i a ' s
(112), t r a g i c , absurd and out of her c o n t r o l .
dark phase or crone
Finally,
i n f l u e n c e on h i s young l i f e , who,
dead and
itself
stands
i f the
i s r e p r e s e n t e d by any c h a r a c t e r i n the
n o v e l , i t i s George's Aunt Agnes, the dominant and
Man's Son,
take
baleful
l i k e Mrs. MacCuish i n Each
f o r the s t a t i c and n e g a t i v e f o r c e s of the o l d ,
r o t t e n world.
On a more a b s t r a c t l e v e l ,
i t i s death
t h a t i s the dark phase, the enemy George f e a r s and
Jerome
fights.
Jerome i s a f i g h t e r and o s t e n s i b l y the most h e r o i c f i g u r e
in
the n o v e l .
He
i s , as Woodcock p o i n t s out,
though not t e c h n i c a l l y the hero . . . a f i g u r e i n the h e r o i c
mould, the wanderer and the g i a n t and .the medicine man a l l
i n one, an energumen i n the t h i r t i e s , a man of sorrows and
s a i n t l y wisdom i n the f i f t i e s , who seems f o r most of the
n o v e l too f a r above common c l a y to be e i t h e r t r u e or t o l e r a b l e u n l e s s we a c c e p t him as myth incarnate."^
From the b e g i n n i n g , Jerome f i t s
mythical hero.
i n t o the p a t t e r n of the
H i s o r i g i n s are obscure; h i s mother i s a most
m y s t e r i o u s woman and h i s f a t h e r i s unknown.
his
birthplace,
l o n e l i n e s s " (158).
3
As a c h i l d , he
an o l d s a i l o r who
"Nation's
i s unsure of
the f i r s t home he knows b e i n g a "primeval
(160), of which he says, "I've never
f i g u r e s ; one,
He
Odyssey," p.
seen a n y t h i n g l i k e i t f o r
i s t u t o r e d by two
prophetically
16
forest"
"tried
strange
to make him
- 85. -
promise t h a t when he grew up he would take to the s e a " (162),
and
the other a "red-headed g i a n t [who} was a l s o a master
crafts-
man" (163) and who b u i l d s him the canoe that w i l l c a r r y him
down-river.
he
.
A f t e r the murder o f h i s mother, he escapes by canoe:
"began to move f a s t on a r i v e r wide, f i r m , s i l v e r and a l i v e
. . u t t e r l y alone f o r the f i r s t
him
time i n h i s l i f e ,
down under t h a t wide open sky through the f o r e s t to the open
sea which he knew was a t i t s end" (174).
sea and escaped the g r e a t e s t
threat
Having reached the
to h i s l i f e
(the E n g i n e e r
who murdered h i s mother), he i s adopted by the g e n t l e
This
follows
almost e x a c t l y
the Hero, the b a s i c m o t i f s
the a r c h e t y p a l
o f which a r e :
b i r t h which can be a v i r g i n or m o d i f i e d
unknown), 2.
Myth o f the B i r t h o f
virgin birth
i n f a n t e x i l e or exposure on the waters
by
simple f o l k , 4.
his
"true" estate
(father
(water-birth:
rescue and f o s t e r a g e
a p r o s p e c t , u l t i m a t e l y , o f ascendance to
( o f t e n as the beloved o f the moon goddess:
compare Perseus, Theseus).^
At night,
Jerome i s "submerged" ( s t i l l
i n a symbolic p r e n a t a l
under the "wide g r e e n l y
up
Martells.
1. a noble or d i v i n e
compare Greek Perseus, Hebrew Moses), 3.
the
bearing
l i g h t o f dawn s w e l l s
s h i n i n g sky."
f o l l o w i n g the r i v e r ,
state)
But, as he nears the ocean,
" i n t o a cool c o n f l a g r a t i o n that
flushed
i n t o the wide and r e a l sky as the e n t i r e world opened up"
(178).
A t t h i s moment, waking from s l e e p , Jerome i s t r u l y born
^ J . Campbell, The Masks o f God'; O c c i d e n t a l
( T o r o n t o : M a c m i l l a n , 1 9 6 4 ) , ^ . 73-74.
Mythology
- 86. -
i n t o t h i s world.
it
I t i s important
t h a t , a t h i s symbolic
birth,
i s the r i s i n g sun that wakes him from s l e e p , "a t u r m o i l o f
g o l d l i k e a tremendous excitement
i n t o the f o r e s t and
"excitement
i n heaven p o u r i n g i t s arrows
f l a s h i n g them o f f the stream"
(179).
The
i n heaven" h i n t s i£ h i s " d i v i n e " n a t u r e , and
arrows o f the r i s i n g sun remind
one
god o f the sun and a famous a r c h e r .
the
o f the Greek god A p o l l o ,
C l e a r l y Jerome can be
i d e n t i f i e d w i t h the sun, as C a t h e r i n e i s w i t h the moon.
powerful and
times
all
dynamic, a source of power and
life
"more l i k e a f o r c e of nature than a man"
He i s
to o t h e r s , and a t
(140).
Jerome i s
these t h i n g s and more.
Jerome i s a l s o a q u e s t i n g Odysseus f i g u r e ,
perhaps
although
l e s s o b v i o u s l y than e i t h e r N e i l Macrae o f Barometer
R i s i n g or A r c h i e MacNeil o f Each Man's Son.
goes to a g r e a t war
i n the e a s t and
to t h i s
who
p o i n t a man
C h r i s t i a n B i b l e , who
(202), i n the "war
L i k e Odysseus, he
t h e r e becomes u n s e t t l e d .
f e r v e n t l y b e l i e v e d i n the t r u t h o f the
"thought
o f h i m s e l f as a s o l d i e r o f
to end a l l wars " he
;
loses h i s f a i t h .
t h r u s t i n t o a w o r l d i n which he can f i n d no a b s o l u t e s .
e n t e r s on a quest to f i n d i d e a l s
God"
He i s
He
to r e p l a c e those he has
where they l i e i s h i s t r u e home, a p l a c e o f peace and
the " C i t y o f God".
Up
lost;
contentment,
H i s e x p e r i e n c e i n the s h e l l - h o l e , the hours
spent w i t h h i s dead "enemy", have turned him a g a i n s t the god
he
once b e l i e v e d i n , and h i s r e a c t i o n takes the form o f an
i d e a l i s t i c humanism.
At t h i s
time, he i d e n t i f i e s
the g o a l o f h i s
quest w i t h
the crowning g l o r y of c l a s s i c a l Greece, a
non-
C h r i s t i a n humanist's s u b s t i t u t e f o r the C i t y of God,
top of a h i l l
--Athens perhaps.
b e a u t i f u l , and
i t was
a great
I t was
privilege
D a n i e l A i n s l i e of Each Man's Son,
guilt
f o r having
turned a g a i n s t
himself into a l i f e
white and
"a c i t y
on
i t was
to e n t e r i t " (227).
Like
l a b o u r i n g under a burden of
the god
o f h i s youth, he
of e x p i a t i o n f o r h i s " s i n s " ,
sacrificing
h i m s e l f on the a l t a r of humanity.
As he
immortality
turns h i s enormous s t r e n g t h , of
i s mankind" (254).
both body and
around him,
he
George, "The
p e r s o n a l i t y , a g a i n s t whatever enemies he
p a r t i c u l a r l y s i c k n e s s , death and
t h i n k s does not
says,
He
tells
throws
"a w a r r i o r
stand w i t h him
...
anything
in his fight.
He
In h i s more obstreperous
Ha-ha i n the midst of the trumpets" (129).
He
only
finds
or anybody
i s , as
Catherine
moments he
says
is a special
kind
of w a r r i o r , as Adam B l o r e , the c y n i c a l s c u l p t o r , makes c l e a r to
George:
He's an i d e a l i s t , and he has ten times more energy than a
normal man.
Push a man l i k e him o u t s i d e your camp and what
does he do?
Nine times out of ten he t r i e s to break i n and
capture i t .
(122)
He has
the might and
i d e a l i s m makes him
the t h i r t i e s .
to
h i s departure
f i r s t war.
is
He
of Homer's Odysseus, but
unable to f u l f i l l
l a c k s wisdom.
the aims of h i s quest
Hence, the whole p e r i o d
f o r Spain f i n a l l y becomes an e x t e n s i o n
That he
d e s c r i b e d as
determination
is s t i l l
"a g e n e r a l
f i g h t i n g a war
blind
during
prior
of
the
becomes c l e a r when he
pondering a tough d e c i s i o n " (218).
His
- 88. -
l a c k o f wisdom causes him t o be too e a s i l y e x c i t e d , and when he
i s e x c i t e d and s t i r r e d he o f t e n r e v e r t s " t o the p r i m i t i v e "
He moves through
life
w i l d l y a t h i s enemies.
" l i k e a s l e e p w a l k e r " (248), s t r i k i n g out
But h i s e x t e r n a l enemies a r e r e a l l y o n l y
p r o j e c t i o n s o f h i s enemies w i t h i n .
"I don't
(231)*
know who I am" (158).
can he complete h i s quest.
Jerome h i m s e l f t e l l s
George,
And o n l y when he l e a r n s who he i s
L i k e Dr. A i n s l i e
i n Each Man's Son,
Jerome i s l o o k i n g f o r a God, one t h a t w i l l s a t i s f y h i s humanist
ideals.
his
F o r a l l h i s admirable
works i n M o n t r e a l , he cannot
l o n g i n g , and s e t s out on another
from home, one t h a t begins
quest, t h i s
i n Spain, c a r r i e s
time
He t e l l s
t h a t d u r i n g t h i s f i n a l , more t r u l y Odyssean quest,
wanted was to come home" (12).
t r u l y away
him through
R u s s i a and China, and f i n a l l y back to M o n t r e a l .
satisfy
France,
George
" a l l I ever
I t i s d u r i n g t h i s journey t h a t he
g a i n s the wisdom o f Odysseus; when he r e t u r n s , George notes t h a t
he has a c q u i r e d an "obscure wisdom," an "obscure
power" (349).
In d e a l i n g w i t h the Odysseus f i g u r e i n t h i s n o v e l ,
MacLennan uses o n l y the bare bones o f the p a t t e r n , r a d i c a l l y
changing many o f i t s p a r t s .
Penelope,
C a t h e r i n e i s the w a i t i n g w i f e ,
o n l y d u r i n g the I l i a d s e c t i o n o f the c y c l e .
i s on h i s f i n a l
When Jerome
quest and i s taken f o r dead (as Odysseus i s o f t e n
a s s e r t e d to b e ) , C a t h e r i n e a c c e p t s the evidence and r e m a r r i e s
not long a f t e r .
Oddly enough, she m a r r i e s
the v e r y man who i s
s y m b o l i c a l l y h e r husband's son. As George says,
f o r a time i n the t h i r t i e s , when I was s p i r i t u a l l y and e m o t i o n a l l y
fatherless
(9) . . . I had come to t h i n k o f Jerome as a p r o t e c t o r ,
- 89. -
almost as a s u b s t i t u t e f o r the f a t h e r I never had except i n
the b i o l o g i c a l sense. (140)
On t h i s
level,
George i s i d e n t i f i e d w i t h Telemachus.
This
Telemachus not o n l y m a r r i e s the w i f e of h i s " f a t h e r " ; he m a r r i e s
his
own
"mother", f o r , as Jerome t e l l s him,
for
safety against l i f e "
mother s u b s t i t u t e
she f u l f i l l e d
(343).
"You m a r r i e d h e r
Here, C a t h e r i n e a c t s as a
to the immature George, and Jerome admits
the same r o l e f o r him b e f o r e h i s f i n a l
quest.
that
The
p a t t e r n s o f r e l a t i o n s h i p are extremely s u b t l e and complex i n t h i s
n o v e l , and, when viewed
r e s o l v e themselves
simply a t t h i s
i n incest.
however, i n much the same way
Son, and
l e v e l , almost seem to
The r e l a t i o n s h i p s are c o n f u s e d ,
they are c o m p l i c a t e d i n Each Man's
they r e s o l v e themselves
p o s i t i v e l y when the o t h e r major
q u e s t i n g h e r o , George Stewart h i m s e l f , i s more c l o s e l y examined.
George, l i k e Jerome, i s a man
his
youth and seeks a replacement.
p h i l o s o p h y o f humanism.
i s more s k e p t i c a l about
because
he
has
He,
too, i s drawn to a
the a t t a i n m e n t o f humanist
l a c k s f a i t h i n h i m s e l f and
He
He has
goals, partly
projects t h i s lack of
little
r e s p e c t f o r mankind as
i s o l a t e s h i m s e l f from humanity, becoming an
o b s e r v e r , and he seeks escape
and f r i g h t e n i n g i n the w o r l d .
s a t i s f y him:
l o s t the r e l i g i o n o f
But, u n l i k e the i d e a l i s t Jerome, George
c o n f i d e n c e on to o t h e r men.
a whole.
who
he s t i l l
insecure, feeling
from what he f i n d s j u s t too c o n f u s i n g
But h i s p h i l o s o p h y does not
seeks something
b e t t e r ; he i s a f r a i d
"no more s u c c e s s f u l than the o l d Greek
pushed b o u l d e r s up the h i l l
"objective"
and
who
knowing they would tumble down the
- 90.
moment they reached
l i k e Sisyphus.
He
the t o p " ( 6 ) .
i s a person
had been born clumsy and had
He
-
L i k e D a n i e l A i n s l i e , he
"who
wished he was
animal:
ox"
Jerome, i n f a c t , i s o f t e n d e s c r i b e d as
he has a " b u l l d o g jaw"
(126).
a man.
He a l s o has
a t one
time r e l a x e s on
time s n i f f s
an
"the
"the
ears "shaped l i k e a
faun's"
the sense of h i s b e i n g something more
George, however, i s i d e n t i f i e d and
w i t h the g e n t l e r , more h e l p l e s s animals
s u r v i v e on s c r a p s .
of i t .
He
He would l i k e
than
i d e n t i f i e s himself
like
the s q u i r r e l s which
to be a hero but i s i n c a p a b l e
i s aware of h i s i n t e r n a l c o n f l i c t but can determine
no
to r e s o l v e i t .
Although
Jerome admits
t h a t i t "gets damned l o n e l y
the c u r r e n t a l l the t i m e " (226), he has
c u r r e n t of h i s times and he does.
the s t r e n g t h and
I n s t e a d , he
tries
i s o l a t e d observer.
the courage,
to get out of i t ,
And
bucking
the s t r e n g t h to f i g h t
the
Nevertheless, h i s f i g h t i n g
a v a i l s him n o t h i n g but f u r t h e r f r u s t r a t i o n .
both
an
A l l t h i s r e - e n f o r c e s the powerful, p r i m i t i v e s i d e of
Jerome's c h a r a c t e r and
way
like
(14), and a " c o n s t i t u t i o n l i k e
(15); he i s a " s t a l l i o n " ( 1 2 6 ) who
l i k e an a n i m a l " (150).
(63).
attacks h i s fate
s o f a l i k e a r e s t i n g a n i m a l " (133), and another
air
and
grown up w i t h o u t much courage"
s h r i n k s from h i s f a t e , u n l i k e Jerome who
a powerful a n i m a l .
a hero,
feels
George,
does not f i g h t
the c u r r e n t .
to stand to one
t h i s a v a i l s him n o t h i n g .
lacking
s i d e as
Neither
an
trying
to t u r n the c u r r e n t nor t r y i n g to a v o i d p a r t i c i p a t i n g i n i t are
s u c c e s s f u l methods of c o p i n g w i t h what i s u l t i m a t e l y the c u r r e n t
of time.
The
quests of both Jerome and
George are f a t e d to
fail
w h i l e they adopt
such extreme measures.
George f e e l s
t h a t a form o f f a t e i s a t work around
him,
t h a t some g i a n t f o r c e i s changing the face of the w o r l d .
The
m e l t i n g g l a c i e r s of the f a r n o r t h a r e but one example of
this
slow, i n e x o r a b l e change.
H i s knowledge of change i s connected
to h i s awareness o f time and h i s f e a r of i n e v i t a b l e death.
he c o n s i d e r s the beauty o f a w i n t e r ' s day, he i s reminded
As
of h i s
"youth and o f the time b e f o r e the g l a c i e r s began to m e l t " (24).
As he has grown o l d e r , he has
o f a f a t e which
l o s t h i s innocence, becoming aware
t h r e a t e n s him. • And,
as t h e r e are g r e a t ,
u n c o n t r o l l a b l e f o r c e s a£ work changing n a t u r e , so t h e r e are
forces
a t work i n s o c i e t y , processes beyond the c o n t r o l o f i n d i v i d u a l
men.
George sees t h i s as p a r t o f the e f f e c t o f modern technology
on p o l i t i c s and p o l i t i c i a n s
the man-made):
(an o p p o s i t i o n between nature and
"The c a p i t a l c i t i e s where they worked had become
c o l o s s a l Univac machines g r i n d i n g out more s t a t i s t i c a l l y - b a s e d
i n f o r m a t i o n i n a month than any t r a i n e d mind c o u l d comprehend i n
a l i f e t i m e " (39).
He a l s o sees p o l i t i c a l a c t i o n i t s e l f
c o n f l i c t ) as e s s e n t i a l l y i r r a t i o n a l and a i m l e s s .
He
most i n t e r n a t i o n a l c r i s e s are l i k e g i g a n t i c mystery
obscure and a b s o l u t e l y i r r a t i o n a l
(man-made
feels
"that
p l a y s i n which
p a s s i o n s are handled by
politicians,
and viewed by the p u b l i c , i n a form o f r i t u a l a k i n to p r i m i t i v e
religious rites"
i n r e l i g i o n and
technology and
(288).
People, h a v i n g turned a s i d e from
faith
love of n a t u r e , have s u b s t i t u t e d a b l i n d f a i t h i n
political
i d e o l o g y and a love o f the m a t e r i a l products
of
t h e i r technology.
But n e c e s s i t y demands a b a l a n c e , and
wheel of f a t e r o l l s onward.
On a more i n d i v i d u a l
n o v e l opens, George says, "I thought
l e v e l , as
w i f e " (6).
But
the
I had come to terms w i t h
m y s e l f and w i t h the p e c u l i a r f a t e which c o n t r o l l e d me
my
the
owing to
i t l a t e r becomes c l e a r t h a t he has come
nowhere near r e a l s a t i s f a c t i o n or contentment, as he h i m s e l f makes
very clear:'
F a t e , I thought.
Who i s e q u a l to i t ? For to be equal to f a t e
i s to be equal to the knowledge t h a t e v e r y t h i n g we have done,
a c h i e v e d , endured and been proud and ashamed o f i s n o t h i n g .
So I thought, a l o n e as I had never been a l o n e . (318)
He
i s r e a c h i n g i n t o h i s darkness, n e a r i n g the p o i n t a t which
A i n s l i e had a v i s i o n of h i s t r u e nature
quest i s l e a d i n g him
little
longer.
i n t o the darkness.
i n Each Man's Son.
But
His
George must w a i t a
He needs h e l p .
H i s f e a r of h i s f a t e i s l i n k e d to h i s f e a r of n i g h t ,
c o n f u s i o n and
a f e a r of l i f e
full
death, which, as Jerome p o i n t s out to him,
i n i t s e n t i r e t y , a f e a r of a c c e p t i n g the burden o f
r e s p o n s i b l i l i t y f o r l i v i n g and
c a r r i e s with i t .
(343)
the s o l i t u d e the
To be born i n t o t h i s w o r l d ,
responsibility
to be
s e p a r a t e d from one's mother, i s a f r i g h t e n i n g e x p e r i e n c e
gists c a l l
i t the " b i r t h trauma").
i s s u e d from the f o r e s t had now
"The
(271).
to t h i s
canoe i n which
taken him out i n t o the ocean.
A canoe i n an ocean, a t n i g h t , w i t h a h u r r i c a n e r i s i n g .
M y s e l f , Everyone"
(psycholo-
George p o i n t s d i r e c t l y
when he d e s c r i b e s Jerome's symbolic b i r t h :
he had
is really
Another b i r t h i s needed, the
Jerome,
birth
symbolized i n the " r i t e s o f passage," an i n i t i a t i o n or
b i r t h i n t o manhood.
rebirth,
Without the m a t u r i t y gained i n such a
the i n d i v i d u a l must l i v e
i n t e r r o r such as
George
d e s c r i b e s , whenever
he d i s c o v e r s t h a t what he b e l i e v e d to be h i s i d e n t i t y i s no
more than a t i n y canoe a t the mercy o f an ocean.
Sharkfilled,
p l a n k t o n - f i l l e d , r e f r a c t o r o f l i g h t , t e r r i b l e and m y s t e r i o u s ,
f o r years t h i s ocean has seemed to slumber beneath the t i n y
i d e n t i t y i t r e c e i v e d from the dark r i v e r .
Now the ocean r i s e s and the t h i n g s w i t h i n i t become
visible.
L i t t l e man, what now? The ocean r i s e s , a l l frames
d i s a p p e a r from around the p i c t u r e s , there i s no form, no
sense, n o t h i n g but chaos i n the darkness o f the ocean storm. (321)
The i n d i v i d u a l i s submerged i n the d e s t r u c t i v e element, taken
back once more i n t o the womb o f the g r e a t mother, back i n t o the
void.
There he must face h i m s e l f , a l l of h i m s e l f , the love and
the h a t e , the hope and the f e a r , f o r the "shark i n the ocean
be i n v i s i b l e , but he i s t h e r e .
of the u n c o n s c i o u s " (304).
human s t r u g g l e .
be done.
So a l s o i s the f e a r i n the ocean
The man
l e a r n s "the n a t u r e o f the
W i t h i n , not w i t h o u t .
But w i t h i n " (321).
may
Without t h e r e i s n o t h i n g to
He l e a r n s , as Jerome l e a r n s , t h a t
one
cannot d e f e a t the i n t e r n a l c u r r e n t no m a t t e r how much one bucks
it,
and, as George
l e a r n s , t h a t one cannot a v o i d the c u r r e n t , f o r
there i s a t l a s t no escape.
George
l e a r n s , as Jerome has, t h a t
he must a c c e p t the ocean o f h i s own mind and the s u r g i n g ocean
o f time.
As Jerome t e l l s him, he must s i n k to the bottom o f the
ocean and c r a w l i n s i d e the s h e l l o f death:
i n s i d e of death and d i e y o u r s e l f .
must l o s e i t to y o u r s e l f "
(342).
"You must c r a w l
You must l o s e your l i f e .
You
Only then can he l i v e w i t h o u t
- 94. -
fear.
A man
in
i s c a s t out alone i n t o t h i s w o r l d ,
the s o l i t u d e of h i s i n d i v i d u a l s e l f .
this solitude:
p r o t e c t and
"Love c o n s i s t s i n t h i s ,
touch and
Only
f a t e d to remain
love can
t h a t two
g r e e t each o t h e r " (290).
must t r a n s c e n d the s e l f ,
the ego,
" ' I t comes - - t o pass.
(293).
individual
11
That i s , i t comes, i n order to
i n the ocean o f
pass"
time
" r o l l e d over them as though they had never been" (293).
But a l s o , as the maturer George sees, the "past was
now
to l o v e , one
As Jerome's f o s t e r - p a r e n t s have
Mr. M a r t e l l and h i s w i f e are caught
which has
But,
of the g r e a t e r mind of a l l mankind (Everyman), of
time past, present and e t e r n a l .
seen,
solitudes
r e c o g n i z i n g t h a t t h i s i s but a
s m a l l t h i n g a f l o a t on a g r e a t e r ocean - - o f the
unconscious,
breach
not dead but
the present flowed over i t , as the f u t u r e would f l o w over
the p r e s e n t " (349).
Although
swallowed i n time, the M a r t e l l s are
i n e r a d i c a b l y a p a r t o f i t , as i s every man
matter
how
insignificant.
A man
who
has ever l i v e d ,
makes h i s mark simply by b e i n g
a l i v e , by b e i n g a p a r t of and c a r r y i n g on the process of
itself.
no
life
A l l make t h e i r mark; Jerome, George, C a t h e r i n e , Everyman.
As George f i n a l l y remarks of C a t h e r i n e , "What i f the ocean o f
overwhelmed her?
I t overwhelms us a l l "
f a t e , George a l s o l e a r n s how
(350).
to t r a n s c e n d i t .
In a c c e p t i n g h i s
He
learns that
Vthe human bondage i s a l s o the human l i b e r t y " (322), and
the acceptance
of a l l t h i n g s - - d e s t r u c t i o n as w e l l as
death as w e l l as b i r t h - -
i s the f u l l
acceptance
time
of
that i n
creation,
life:
the l a s t p o s s i b l e harmony, the o n l y one there can be, which
i s a w i l l to l i v e , l o v e , grow and be g r a t e f u l , the determinat i o n to endure a l l t h i n g s , s u f f e r a l l t h i n g s , hope a l l
t h i n g s , b e l i e v e a l l t h i n g s n e c e s s a r y f o r what our a n c e s t o r s
c a l l e d the g l o r y of God.
To s t r u g g l e and work f o r t h a t , a t
the end, i s a l l there i s l e f t .
(321)
Jerome, r e t u r n i n g home l i k e
underworld, the
Jerome i s no
He has
the wise Odysseus from
the
land o f the dead, b r i n g s wisdom to George.
longer a q u e s t i n g
become a "wise o l d man",
h e r o : he
has
f u l f i l l e d his
a redeemed p a r e n t a l
w i l l h e l p h i s "son", George, to a t t a i n h i s g o a l .
Odysseus, George i s Telemachus, and
i s Hermes, patron
god
As
quest.
figure,
who
Jerome i s
as George i s Odysseus, Jerome
o f the Odyssey.
At
the end
of the
novel,
Jerome i s many t h i n g s ; a wise Odysseus, a f r i e n d l y Hermes, a
resurrected
"returned
He
returns
along,
the
sun-hero, a humanist C h r i s t , the epitome of Everyman
from the dead" (306)
to teach
to teach what C a t h e r i n e
l e s s o n the moon and
has
nature
the
l e s s o n of l i f e
renewed.
been s i l e n t l y o f f e r i n g a l l
teach,
the concept of l i f e i n death and death i n l i f e , of the f a c t
t h a t no matter how many i n d i v i d u a l l i v e s and years pass away,
there w i l l be more years and l i v e s , and t h a t the r i t u a l s o f
both are e t e r n a l . - '
The
l e s s o n i s t h a t the s p i r i t o f l i f e
i s unconquerable.
This i s b a s i c a l l y the same l e s s o n Odysseus l e a r n s i n the
Homeric c y c l e , and
reveals greater
a profound examination of the Homeric myth
depths i n The
Watch that Ends the N i g h t .
MacLennan, Scotchman's Return, p.
72.
"The
patron god o f the I l i a d
of
i s A p o l l o , god o f the l i g h t w o r l d and
the e x c e l l e n c e o f heroes."6
Jerome M a r t e l l
i s c l e a r l y born
i n t o the " r e a l " world under the a u s p i c e s o f j u s t such a mythic
d i e t y , and s h i n e s by h i s l i g h t
up
to h i s d e p a r t u r e
f o r Spain.
throughout
the years o f b a t t l e
"In the Odyssey, on the o t h e r hand,
the patron o f Odysseus's voyage i s . . . Hermes, guide o f s o u l s
to the underworld,
the patron, a l s o ,
o f r e b i r t h and the l o r d o f
the knowledges beyond death, which may be known to h i s i n i t i a t e s
even i n l i f e . " 7
is
Jerome has no such a i d , but George h a s , and i t
the changed, r e - b o r n Jerome h i m s e l f .
G i l b e r t Murray has noted
s p e c i f i c s o l a r and l u n a r a n a l o g i e s i n the Odyssey --which i s o n l y
n a t u r a l i n a quest-romance, as Frye i n d i c a t e s
Criticism,
p. 188-- Odysseus b e i n g s o l a r
i n t o darkness
(a sun-hero who
recedes
and r e t u r n s ) and Penelope l u n a r ( a t h e r loom she
weaves and unweaves l i k e
and
i n Anatomy o f
the moon going through
i t s phases).
C a t h e r i n e have been i d e n t i f i e d i n a s i m i l a r way.
leads to a f u r t h e r
Jerome
But t h i s
i n s i g h t on the p s y c h o l o g i c a l l e v e l ;
t h a t the inward t u r n i n g o f the mind (symbolized by the sunset)
should c u l m i n a t e i n a r e a l i z a t i o n o f an i d e n t i t y i n esse o f
the i n d i v i d u a l (microcosm) and the u n i v e r s e (macrocosm), which,
when a c h i e v e d , would b r i n g t o g e t h e r i n one order o f a c t and
r e a l i z a t i o n the p r i n c i p l e s o f e t e r n i t y and time, sun and moon,
male and female.8
"Campbell,
O c c i d e n t a l Mythology, p. 162
?Ibid.
8
Ibid.,
pp. 163-64.
T h i s i s what takes p l a c e i m p l i c i t l y i n the Odyssey, and both
i m p l i c i t l y and e x p l i c i t l y i n The Watch that Ends the N i g h t .
The m a s c u l i n e , h e r o i c age d e p i c t e d i n the I l i a d
i s too
o n e - s i d e d , and Odysseus' quest i s n e c e s s a r y i n o r d e r t h a t the
mighty male hero can g a i n the knowledge to r e s t o r e the balance
i n s o c i e t y and n a t u r e .
T h i s p a t t e r n has been seen a t work i n
Each Man's Son, and i s e q u a l l y a t work i n The Watch t h a t Ends the
Night.
During the age o f r a t i o n a l i s m , men e s t a b l i s h e d a d e i s t i c
r e l i g i o n o f the One Engineer and a cosmology o f a m e c h a n i s t i c
universe
(designed and o i l e d by the omnipotent
the s c i e n c e o f machines almost
e f f e c t i v e l y completed
Engineer), elevating
to the p o i n t o f s a n c t i t y .
This
the d i v i s i o n o f God from n a t u r e , n a t u r e
from man and man from God, i s o l a t i n g man i n an a l i e n and l o n e l y
w o r l d o f h i s own making.
T h i s , o f c o u r s e , prompted the Romantic
r e a c t i o n , but i t i s a r e a c t i o n t h a t never r e a l l y reached
the common
man, who c o n t i n u e d , and c o n t i n u e s , to b e l i e v e i n an u l t i m a t e
s a l v a t i o n to be c o n f e r r e d by technology.
significant
In t h i s novel, i t i s
t h a t i n the w i l d e r n e s s camp o f Jerome's c h i l d h o o d ,
where t h i n g s a r e reduced
to t h e i r b a s i c e s s e n t i a l s , i t i s the
Engineer who, "Of a l l the l o n e l y men i n the camp," i s the " l o n e l i e s t
of
and
them a l l " (167).
And i t i s he who murders Anna
s e p a r a t e s Jerome (epitome
s t a r t s him on h i s quest.
(Earth-Mother),
o f Everyman) from h i s mother and
The masculine hero, unbalanced,
alienated
from female n a t u r e , v e n t u r e s out i n t o the ocean and the n i g h t ,
there e v e n t u a l l y to f i n d the t r u t h about h i m s e l f and r e t u r n ,
-
98.
humbler and w i s e r , h a v i n g l e a r n e d the nature of the
delicate
balance of reason and emotion, c o n s c i o u s and unconscious, male
and
female.
T h i s p a r t of the r e s o l u t i o n of The Watch t h a t Ends
the N i g h t , w h i l e r e s e m b l i n g
profound
and
i s even more
universal.
MacLennan extends
conflict
t h a t of Each Man's Son,
h i s scope to r e s o l v e what George c a l l s
"between the s p i r i t and
the human c o n d i t i o n " (27).
the
He
r e s o l v e s i t by a c c e p t i n g the humanist Greek view, which, as
Campbell says,
suggests an i n d e f i n a b l e c i r c u m s c r i p t i o n , w i t h i n the bounds of
which both the gods and men work t h e i r i n d i v i d u a l w i l l s , ever
i n danger of v i o l a t i n g the u n d e f i n e d bounds and b e i n g s t r u c k
down,\yet w i t h p l a y enough - - w i t h i n l i m i t s ^ - - to a c h i e v e a
comely r e a l i z a t i o n of ends humanly c o n c e i v e d .
9
\
This i s the o u t l o o k of c l a s s i c a l humanism, i n which MacLennan
f i n d s many of h i s b a s i c t r u t h s .
D i v i n e d e s t i n y moves i n g r e a t
c y c l e s tof c r e a t i o n , d e s t r u c t i o n and c r e a t i o n , b i r t h , death
rebirth.
The
ocean of time surges and ebbs, each
chaos b e i n g s u p p l a n t e d by a g e n e s i s , and
w i t h i n these c y c l e s (of the day,
time, the age
is
a "good and
and o f e t e r n i t y ) ,
faithful
succeeding
the i n d i v i d u a l
caught
the month, the y e a r , the
the man
who
and
life-
accepts h i s f a t e ,
who
s e r v a n t . . . f a i t h f u l over a few t h i n g s , "
becomes " r u l e r over many" and e n t e r s " i n t o the j o y o f the L o r d "
(350:
and
from Matthew 25:
there i s l i g h t .
Or,
21).
i n the words of Psalm v. of Isaac Watts,
from which MacLennan takes h i s
9lbid.,
p.
180.
Thus, chaos and n i g h t a r e ended,
title,
I
- 99. -
Before the h i l l s i n o r d e r stood,
Or e a r t h r e c e i v e d h e r frame,
From E v e r l a s t i n g Thou a r t God,
To e n d l e s s years the same.
A thousand ages i n Thy s i g h t
Are l i k e an evening gone;
Short as the watch t h a t ends the n i g h t
Before the r i s i n g sun.
Time, l i k e an e v e r - r o l l i n g stream,
Bears a l l i t s sons away;
They f l y f o r g o t t e n , as a dream
Dies a t the opening day.
The f i n a l
tone o f the n o v e l i s a r e l i g i o u s one, s y n t h e s i z i n g both
c l a s s i c a l and C h r i s t i a n
thought.
As i n Barometer R i s i n g and Each Man's Son, i n t h i s n o v e l
MacLennan has blended the elements
o f romance and comedy.
The
main body o f the n o v e l i s concerned w i t h quest and c o n f l i c t :
is
the s t o r y o f two heroes
t h e i r enemies.
i t
--the mighty and the meek-- b a t t l i n g
They win t h e i r b a t t l e s when they r e a l i z e
that the
f i g h t i s i n t e r n a l r a t h e r than e x t e r n a l , t h a t the "enemy" i s a
very r e a l psychological fact
social evil
to be a c c e p t e d r a t h e r than some a b s t r a c t
t o be e x t e r m i n a t e d .
When they r e c o g n i z e t h e i r
to Everyman, they a r e a b l e t o take t h e i r
Jerome the mighty
relation
places i n s o c i e t y :
but now humble hero s e t s o f f to share h i s wisdom
w i t h the w o r l d ; George, the meek, i n h e r i t s
the e a r t h .
So the
n o v e l ends w i t h a v i s i o n o f a s o c i e t y i n which a l l men a r e u n i t e d ,
a s o c i e t y which extends beyond n a t i o n a l boundaries
the w o r l d .
to encompass
The s o c i e t y does n o t y e t e x i s t , but, as i n the o t h e r
n o v e l s , i t i s a v i s i o n o f the f u t u r e .
T h i s i s a comic
resolution,
- 100.
f o r i n comedy, as Northrop Frye says, i s the h o p e f u l
of the end o f s o c i a l e f f o r t
"vision
. . . the f r e e human s o c i e t y .
And MacLennan's r e s o l u t i o n i s s o l i d l y based on the c l a s s i c a l
tenet t h a t human freedom i s i n human bondage, y i e l d i n g a
comedy i n which, as i n tragedy,
"the a b s o l u t e b e g i n n i n g . . . i s
the c o n d i t i o n o f freedom, the a b s o l u t e end the r e c o g n i t i o n o f
necessity."11
In The Watch that Ends the N i g h t , MacLennan p o r t r a y s
the grave and c o n s t a n t i n human s u f f e r i n g and i n human j o y , which,
leads - - o r may l e a d - - to an e x p e r i e n c e that i s regarded by
those t h a t have known i t as the apogee o f t h e i r l i v e s , and
which i s y e t i n e f f a b l e .
And t h i s e x p e r i e n c e . . . i s the
u l t i m a t e aim o f a l l r e l i g i o n , the u l t i m a t e r e f e r e n c e o f a l l
1 7
myth and r i t e .
Human s u f f e r i n g and human j o y a r e r e s o l v e d i n a paradox; as George
says,
Where wast
Declare,
So, f o r an
To have i t
darkness o f s e l f
t i f u l experience
earth?
thou when I l a i d the f o u n d a t i o n o f the
i f thou hast u n d e r s t a n d i n g .
i n s t a n t , you may have that u n d e r s t a n d i n g .
, to f e e l the movement o f l i g h t f l o o d the
--even f o r an i n s t a n t - - i s the most beauanyone can ever know. (322)
The g r e a t quest c y c l e ends j o y f u l l y w i t h the symbolic r e b i r t h o f
the hero, who i s f i n a l l y mature, who has l e f t
the p r o t e c t i v e
mother and can now be a r e a l husband to h i s w i f e .
George's e x p e r i e n c e o f epiphany
occurs l a t e a t n i g h t :
once
a g a i n MacLennan p l a c e s the c l i m a x o f h i s n o v e l a t the "heart o f
iOpables o f I d e n t i t y , p. 18
F . von S c h l e g e l , c i t e d i n M i c h a e l Grant, Myths o f the
Greeks and Romans (New York: Mentor, 1962), p. 165.
i X
12campbell,
P r i m i t i v e Mythology, p. 54.
darkness".
101.
-
George walks out i n t o the n i g h t to f i n d
seems no l o n g e r dark or t h r e a t e n i n g .
The darkness w i t h i n him,
by b e i n g accepted, has been p a r a d o x i c a l l y d i s p e l l e d .
is
still
But George p r o v i d e s an e p i l o g u e ,
the pheasants
appear
flamboyant,
C a t h e r i n e a r e happy and c o n t e n t .
(347) .
The s q u i r r e l s f o r a g e ,
S p r i n g comes, and C a t h e r i n e
--as n a t u r e blossoms,
Summer passes and C a t h e r i n e s h i n e s t r a n q u i l l y .
approaches
paramount.
Autumn
The sense of nature as a s a c r e d mystery
I n t h i s evening of t h e i r
life
together, George a t
f u l l y appreciates, without anxiety, that "the early
a good day h o l d s w i t h i n i t s e l f
than the promise
the dawn and the morning no l e s s
the new day f o r Canada and the world,
can be seen i n the c h a r a c t e r of S a l l y ,
George,
evening
of the n i g h t " (301) .
The dawn, h e r a l d i n g
Catherine,
so does
and George speaks of " t h e c a t h e d r a l hush of a Quebec
I n d i a n Summer" (349) .
last
for,
and g e n t l e George and a r t i s t i c
r e t u r n s to h e r a r t and h e r gardening
she.
my
the p r e c i s e j o u r n a l i s t , he f e e l s i t i s a s t o r y out of which
t h e reader " s h o u l d be l e d f a c t u a l l y "
of
The climax
reached and, as George says, " I c o u l d end here because
s t o r y i s t o l d " (347) .
is
that i t
child
of Jerome and
the sun, the moon and nature, and f o s t e r - c h i l d of
the average man i n whom the elements
a r e now w e l l - m i x e d .
S a l l y ' s blonde head i s "as f r e s h as the dawn . . . as golden as
the sun on a s i n g l e c l o u d i n the s k y " (318).
room f o r the m y s t e r i o u s
S a l l y has "much
t h i n g " (331), the same s p i r i t of l i f e
found i n C a t h e r i n e , and she i s both cool-headed and e n t h u s i a s t i c ,
- 102.
young and wise.
of a boy"
(331)
-
N e i t h e r she nor A l a n Royce, the "great
she
plans to marry, i s plagued by the a n x i e t y
or weltschtnenz which burdened t h e i r
parents' generation.
r e p r e s e n t the f u t u r e ; together they w i l l b u i l d
a revitalized
world.
bear
a new
They
Canada and
Chapter F i v e :
The E t e r n a l
Quest
Hugh MacLennan i s a humanist, a r e l i g i o u s humanist,
makes i t h i s task to r e d e f i n e and r e a s s e r t
who
those h u m a n i s t i c
v a l u e s which have descended from the c l a s s i c s .
He i s i n a main
stream o f modern l i t e r a r y endeavour, a t t e m p t i n g both to d i s c o v e r
and to s t a b i l i z e a system o f v a l u e s i n an age i n which
systems are f a i l i n g .
One
traditional
o f h i s reasons f o r c o n s c i o u s l y u s i n g
myths as p a t t e r n s f o r h i s work i s that they a r e c r o s s - c u l t u r a l
u n i v e r s a l s , g i v i n g a s t a b l e base of t r a d i t i o n and c o n v e n t i o n
from which to view modern man's predicament.
The
predicament
MacLennan sees i s one which has been o f c e n t r a l importance i n
literature
f o r the past c e n t u r y — t h e s e a r c h of the s e n s i t i v e
individual for a real identity.
Modern man
l o s t h i s sense o f
i d e n t i t y when he l o s t any t a n g i b l e e x t e r n a l or i n t e r n a l a b s o l u t e s
a g a i n s t which he c o u l d measure h i m s e l f , a l o s s t h a t
strong c o n f l i c t i n g
On one
created
desires.
level,
between an outworn,
the predicament can be seen i n the c o n f l i c t
dogmatic r e l i g i o n
C h r i s t i a n i t y ) and a new,
vaguer
( p u r i t a n , Old
Testament
(because as y e t u n d e f i n e d ) but
p o s i t i v e and humane p h i l o s o p h y , a c o n f l i c t amply demonstrated i n
Each Man's Son.
B r o a d l y s p e a k i n g , i t i s the same c o n f l i c t o f
"Hebraism" and " H e l l e n i s m " determined by Matthew A r n o l d i n
C u l t u r e and Anarchy.
And MacLennan's thought bears
to t h a t o f o t h e r V i c t o r i a n t h i n k e r s .
resemblance
For i n s t a n c e , the
o p p o s i t i o n he d e s c r i b e s i s f i n a l l y b e s t c o n s i d e r e d as an o p p o s i t i o n
between f l u x and s t a s i s , motion and r e s t , c a l l i n g
to mind the
- 104.
work of Walter
change and
Motion
-
P a t e r , i n which "Motion
i s i d e n t i f i e d with
those i d e o l o g i e s which have made change t h e i r
stock.
i s thus H e r a c l i t e a n i s m , E p i c u r e a n i s m , H e l l e n i s m , " ^
r e s t i s i d e n t i f i e d with C h r i s t i a n i t y .
MacLennan's, one
In P a t e r ' s s t o r i e s , as i n
i s c o n s t a n t l y " c o n f r o n t e d w i t h the odyssey
the immutable young o u t c a s t . . . the e x i l e s e a r c h i n g
time and
A list
space
examples are P a t e r ' s
Hardy's Jude, Conrad's Jim, Joyce's
Dedalus,
and
D a n i e l A i n s l i e , Jerome M a r t e l l and George Stewart.
c h a r a c t e r s are engaged i n quests of some k i n d , and
and
Marius,
and
A l l these
i t is significant
The Watch t h a t Ends
d i f f e r e n t kinds o f wanderer.
An e x p l a n a t i o n of t h i s i s found i n MacLennan's use of myth.
MacLennan i s a w r i t e r who
novels being r e a l i s t i c
and events
d e a l s w i t h modern h i s t o r y , h i s
i n t h a t they a r e b u i l t around a c t u a l
i n r e c e n t Canadian h i s t o r y
Novel
scenes
(the H a l i f a x e x p l o s i o n , the
Cape B r e t o n c o a l mines, the Great D e p r e s s i o n ) .
makes c l e a r , the l i t e r a r y
As Northrop
Frye
artist
U. C. Knoepflmacher, R e l i g i o u s Humanism and the V i c t o r i a n
( P r i n c e t o n : P r i n c e t o n U. P r e s s , 1965), p. 162.
2
Ibid.,
p.
170.
2
certainly
MacLennan's N e i l Macrae and Angus Murray, A r c h i e MacNeil
there are r e c u r r e n t l y two
present."
twentieth century
f i c t i o n would be v e r y l o n g ; obvious
t h a t i n Barometer R i s i n g , Each Man's Son,
of
through
f o r the i n h e r i t a n c e denied him by h i s own
of such c h a r a c t e r s i n n i n e t e e n t h and
the Night
and
- 105.
f i n d s i n c r e a s i n g l y t h a t he can d e a l w i t h h i s t o r y o n l y to the
e x t e n t t h a t h i s t o r y s u p p l i e s him w i t h , or a f f o r d s a p r e t e x t
f o r , the comic, t r a g i c , romantic or i r o n i c myths t h a t he
actually uses.
3
MacLennan, i n t h i s sense,
mythic
patterns.
rewrites h i s t o r y i n accord with h i s
He g i v e s h i s t o r y s i g n i f i c a n t meaning, l i k e
the m e t a h i s t o r i a n s , w r i t i n g
romantic h i s t o r i c a l myths based on a quest o r p i l g r i m a g e to a
C i t y of God or a c l a s s l e s s s o c i e t y . . . comic h i s t o r i c a l myths
of progress through e v o l u t i o n o r r e v o l u t i o n . . . t r a g i c myths
of d e c l i n e and f a l l , l i k e the works o f Gibbon and Spengler
. . . i r o n i c myths o f r e c u r r e n c e or c a s u a l c a t a s t r o p h e .4MacLennan i n c l u d e s a l l these h i s t o r i c a l myths i n h i s n o v e l s ,
s t r e s s i n g d i f f e r e n t myths from n o v e l to n o v e l i n a c l e a r l y
developing pattern.
The main bodies
are concerned
with
the comic v i s i o n
o f the three n o v e l s under c o n s i d e r a t i o n
the c o n f l i c t o f two main f o r c e s o r world
( i d e n t i f i e d with
( i d e n t i f i e d with s t a s i s ) .
d i v i d e d i n t o romantic
f l u x ) and the t r a g i c
visions;
vision
Each o f these v i s i o n s can be f u r t h e r
and i r o n i c s t r u c t u r e s , each o f which i s
r e p r e s e n t e d by a c h a r a c t e r .
The i n d i v i d u a l n o v e l s are s t r u c t e r e d
on t h i s g e n e r a l p a t t e r n , each one b e i n g a d i f f e r e n t c o n f i g u r a t i o n
of the p a t t e r n :
I.
Comic v i s i o n
A.
3
Romantic
F a b l e s , p. 5 3 .
^Ibid,
p
. 54.
- 106. -
1.
The c h a r a c t e r s a r e i d e n t i f i e d w i t h f l u x .
2.
Their world i s p o s i t i v e , a c t i v e ,
evolving.
3.
There i s a sense o f d e s t i n y moving toward an end.
B.
II.
p r o g r e s s i v e and
Ironic
1.
The c h a r a c t e r s are s t i l l
2.
T h e i r w o r l d i s p o s i t i v e but c o n t e m p l a t i v e , r e p e t i t i o u s
and r e v o l v i n g .
3.
There i s a sense of d e s t i n y moving i n e t e r n a l
Tragic
A.
i d e n t i f i e d with f l u x .
Vision
Romantic
1.
The c h a r a c t e r s a r e i d e n t i f i e d w i t h s t a s i s .
2.
T h e i r w o r l d i s p o s i t i v e but s t a t i c and
3.
There i s a sense o f d e s t i n y moving i n e t e r n a l
B.
imprisoning.
cycles.
Ironic
1.
The c h a r a c t e r s are i d e n t i f i e d w i t h
stasis.
2.
T h e i r w o r l d i s n e g a t i v e , s t a t i c and
3.
There i s a sense o f d e s t i n y moving toward an end.
The c o n f l i c t o f f l u x and s t a s i s , o f comic and t r a g i c
unchanged
cycles.
imprisoning.
remains
throughout the three n o v e l s , and the r e s o l u t i o n s a r e
c o n s t a n t l y comic.
But the s t r e s s e s on the romantic and
p l o t s change from Barometer
ironic
R i s i n g through to The Watch that Ends
the N i g h t , the emphasis moving from romantic to i r o n i c .
In Barometer
the comic v i s i o n .
R i s i n g , N e i l Macrae i s the romantic hero of
H i s w o r l d i s based i n modern western man's sense
-
of
and
of
107.
-
participation in history; i t is basically
future-oriented
thus i m p l i c i t l y m e s s i a n i c , the h e r o i c N e i l b e i n g
a messiah,
something
prepared to l e a d h i s people to a promised
Angus Murray i s the i r o n i c hero o f the comic v i s i o n .
is
of a more c l a s s i c a l nature
land.
H i s world
(based on h i s r e a d i n g o f the
c l a s s i c s ) i n which h i s t o r y i s s u b o r d i n a t e d to a m e t a h i s t o r y o f
g r e a t r e p e t i t i o u s c y c l e s o f d e s t r u c t i o n and c r e a t i o n ; i t i s
b a s i c a l l y p r e s e n t - o r i e n t e d and not m e s s i a n i c , the
Angus w i l l i n g
of
to l i v e out h i s l i f e
i n peace.
satisfied
In the t r a g i c
vision
the n o v e l , A l e c MacKenzie r e p r e s e n t s the p o s i t i v e w o r l d , the
romantic,
' A r c a d i a n ' w o r l d , crushed by the wheel o f d e s t i n y .
C o l o n e l Wain r e p r e s e n t s the n e g a t i v e w o r l d i r o n i c a l l y d e s t r o y e d .
In
Each Man's Son,
romantic and i r o n i c
the s t r e s s MacLennan p l a c e s on the
p l o t s has s h i f t e d .
Mrs. MacCuish r e p r e s e n t s
the n e g a t i v e w o r l d which i s i r o n i c a l l y i n the process of b e i n g
destroyed.
v i s i o n who
of
A r c h i e MacNeil i s the romantic hero o f the
must s u f f e r the same f a t e .
The c h i e f r e p r e s e n t a t i v e
the i r o n i c w o r l d and comic v i s i o n i s Dr. MacKenzie.
eye o f t h i s wise o l d man,
romantic hero
a definite,
D a n i e l A i n s l i e begins as an
" h e r o i c " end) and ends as a b a l a n c e d hero
a messiah
Under the
unbalanced
( i n d i c a t e d by h i s concern w i t h i n d i v i d u a l e f f o r t
by h i s acceptance o f a l i f e w i t h o u t hope).
of
tragic
(indicated
I f t h e r e i s any
hint
i n the n o v e l , i t i s a t l a s t d i r e c t e d toward A l a n
M a c N e i l , but the h i n t i s muted by the l i g h t o f A i n s l i e ' s
"conversion".
to
Although i n Barometer R i s i n g the romantic
plot
- 108. -
outweighed
the i r o n i c ,
i n Each Man*s Son the s t r e s s i s b e g i n n i n g
to r e v e r s e .
By the time MacLennan comes to w r i t e The Watch that Ends
the N i g h t (or p o s s i b l y d u r i n g the w r i t i n g ) , h i s a t t i t u d e s have
changed
to the degree that the f i n a l s t r e s s i s almost c o m p l e t e l y
on the i r o n i c h e r o .
Both Jerome and George b e g i n as romantic
heroes o f the comic v i s i o n .
figure,
Jerome, b e i n g the s t r o n g e s t romance
f o l l o w s the path of the t r a g i c romance i n t o death, but
i s m i r a c u l o u s l y r e s u r r e c t e d , and r e t u r n s as a hero o f the
world.
George a l s o f o l l o w s the romantic p l o t l i n e but becomes
an i r o n i c hero a t the end o f the n o v e l .
is
ironic
f o l l o w e d to i t s c o n c l u s i o n
Blackwell.
The t r a g i c
The tragic-romance p l o t
(death) i n the c h a r a c t e r of Norah
i r o n i c world i s seen i n the process of
decay i n George Stewart's Aunt Agnes and the g h o s t l y S i r Rupert
Irons.
There i s a h i n t of progress i n S a l l y and A l a n Royce (as
i n the A l a n of Each Man's Son), but the o v e r - r i d i n g i m p r e s s i o n i s
not romantic but i r o n i c , not m e s s i a n i c but
In Barometer
cyclic.
R i s i n g , a cosmic b a t t l e i s i n p r o g r e s s , i n which
l i g h t and dark, f l u x and s t a s i s , good and e v i l , contend f o r v i c t o r y ,
and e v o l u t i o n a r y or l i n e a r r a t h e r than r e v o l u t i o n a r y or c y c l i c
movement i s s t r e s s e d .
but the c y c l i c
With Each Man's Son the b a t t l e c o n t i n u e s ,
p h i l o s o p h y has become more dominant.
In The Watch
t h a t Ends the N i g h t , the b a t t l e ends, and the p r e v i o u s l y contending
powers are r e s o l v e d i p a paradox.
MacLennan has
the t r a d i t i o n a l J u d a e o - C h r i s t i a n way
turned away from
o f l o o k i n g a t time and the
-
cosmos, a l i n e a r ,
109.
f u t u r e - o r i e n t e d way,
and has embraced a
t r u l y c l a s s i c a l o u t l o o k v e r y s i m i l a r to t h a t o f H e r a c l i t u s , a
philosophy of process.
u n i v e r s e to be f i r e ,
H e r a c l i t u s took the b a s i c element o f the
f o r i t i s the element which i s always
changing and y e t somehow always the same.
As f i r e
i s the
o f l i g h t , MacLennan's s t r e s s on l i g h t and r a d i a n c e a t the
o f The Watch t h a t Ends the Night s t r i k e s a f a m i l i a r note.
source
end
Also,
H e r a c l i t u s a c c e p t e d s t r i f e as b a s i c to the u n i v e r s a l o r d e r ; t h a t
i s , he c o n s i d e r e d n e c e s s a r y the e t e r n a l u n d e r l y i n g t e n s i o n of
opposites.
The
p a r a l l e l w i t h MacLennan i s o b v i o u s .
Finally,
H e r a c l i t u s i d e n t i f i e d God w i t h the u n i v e r s a l process i t s e l f ,
is directly
p a r a l l e l w i t h MacLennan's b e l i e f t h a t man
which
should
r e v e r e the u n i v e r s a l mystery
o f the e t e r n a l c y c l e .
Setting
himself s o l i d l y i n c l a s s i c a l
p h i l o s o p h y , MacLennan r e s o l v e s the
c o n f l i c t between good and e v i l by a c c e p t i n g them both w i t h i n a
l a r g e r scheme.
The c h a r a c t e r s i n The Watch t h a t Ends the N i g h t
longer prophesy
an h i s t o r i c a l e v o l u t i o n to some vague form o f
Utopian s t a t e .
The dream o f a past golden age, one
o f youth,
innocence and s i m p l i c i t y - - A l e c MacKenzie's r u r a l w o r l d ,
A i n s l i e ' s youth
and
Dr.
i n the Margaree v a l l e y , George Stewart's " A r c a d i a " - -
the dream o f a f u t u r e golden age,
innocence and
no
one
o f renewed youth,
s i m p l i c i t y --the f u t u r e o f N e i l Macrae, Penny
and Jean, A l a n MacNeil's
f u t u r e , the romantic
George
Stewart's
dream o f peace i n i s o l a t i o n - - are f i n a l l y c a s t a s i d e i n The Watch
i
t h a t Ends the N i g h t , and are r e p l a c e d w i t h a p h i l o s o p h y - c u m - r e l i g i o n
- 110.
of the here-and-now.
The
-
quest f o r a p e r s o n a l i n t e r n a l
identity,
o v e r t l y e x t e r n a l i z e d i n Barometer R i s i n g to r e p r e s e n t the n a t i o n ,
drawn inward
is
i n Each Man's Son but s t i l l h a v i n g n a t i o n a l
overtones,
f i n a l l y concluded i n The Watch t h a t Ends the Night where i t
becomes almost e n t i r e l y i n t e r n a l .
And,
p a r a d o x i c a l l y , where
MacLennan's p o r t r a y a l o f the quest i s most i n t e r n a l ,
analogy
the
to be drawn between i n d i v i d u a l c h a r a c t e r s and
(and the world) i s most e f f e c t i v e .
MacLennan has
the u n i v e r s a l i s b e s t e x e m p l i f i e d i n the
the n a t i o n
learned that
individual.
MacLennan takes the quest myth s e r i o u s l y , which i s not
s u r p r i s i n g , c o n s i d e r i n g the depth and e x t e n t o f h i s own
quest f o r s e l f - d i s c o v e r y and
self-realization.
p e r s o n a l l y the myth i s used,
the more i n t e n s e i s i t s e f f e c t
profound
i t s implications.
the more
and
Where the use o f Homer's Odyssey as
a s t r u c t u r a l framework i s s p e l l e d out, and
the i n d i v i d u a l hero and
And
personal
the p a r a l l e l between
the n a t i o n i s made almost
too o b v i o u s ,
as i n Barometer R i s i n g , much of the e f f e c t i v e n e s s i s l o s t .
the mythic and
social
As
p a r a l l e l s are blended more s u b t l y i n t o
the
background --more i n Each Man's Son and almost c o m p l e t e l y i n The
Watch t h a t Ends the N i g h t - - the i m p l i c i t analogy
In Barometer R i s i n g , the Homeric p a r a l l e l
to c o n t r i b u t e r e l a t i v e l y
little
i s more powerful.
finally
to the thematic whole.
appears
An
analogy can be seen to e x i s t between the c l a s s i c a l myth and
historical
s i t u a t i o n , and
d i s c o v e r i n g i t and
the
the author must be g i v e n c r e d i t f o r
f o r modernizing
the Homeric s t o r y .
But
the
)
- 111. -
a r c h e t y p a l quest myth (myth o f the human c y c l e ) , o f which the
Odyssey i s one r e p r e s e n t a t i v e , by b e i n g used so o v e r t l y ,
appears
somewhat c o n t r i v e d , and the c h a r a c t e r s , p l a y i n g out what
are too o b v i o u s l y " r o l e s " to be i n d i v i d u a l
l i v e s , are rather
f l a t and uhengaging; r a t h e r than people, they seem more
pawns i n the hands o f t h e i r o m n i s c i e n t c r e a t o r . ^
like
More e f f e c t i v e
are the two o t h e r k i n d s o f myth t h a t MacLennan uses:
myths
finally
nature
(myths o f the n a t u r a l c y c l e ) - - i n t h i s n o v e l , the s o l a r and
v e g e t a t i o n c y c l e s - - and the J u d a e o - C h r i s t i a n myths o f Genesis and
Resurrection
conveyed
(the d i v i n e or transcendent c y c l e ) .
chiefly
through
the imagery,
p o e t i c a l l y more e f f e c t i v e .
These myths a r e
and b e i n g l e s s o v e r t a r e
The author's use o f the Odyssey i n
t h i s novel i s s i m i l a r i n e f f e c t
to the d i d a c t i c passages
which
o c c a s i o n a l l y o c c u r ; the r e a d e r becomes aware o f the n a r r a t o r
i n t r u d i n g i n t o the a r t i s t i c w o r l d o f the n o v e l and the a r t i s t i c
u n i t y o f t h a t world i s d i s t u r b e d .
In Each Man's Son, the e x p l i c i t mythic
parallels
and C e l t i c ) a r e made l e s s o b v i o u s , w i t h the r e s u l t
become more e f f e c t i v e .
This world m a i n t a i n s
the n a r r a t o r v e r y r a r e l y i n t r u d i n g .
l o a d , n a t u r e myths ( s o l a r ,
that
(Homeric
they
its artistic
The imagery
bears
l u n a r and o c e a n i c ) combining
unity,
the h e a v i e s t
w i t h a myth
of the death o f the gods t o c r e a t e an i n t e n s e , s e l f - s u p p o r t i n g mood
-"This weakness o f Barometer R i s i n g becomes c l e a r i f the
n o v e l i s compared w i t h James Joyce's U l y s s e s . Joyce a l s o uses
the s t r u c t u r e o f the Odyssey, but h i s c h a r a c t e r s a r e c l e a r l y
i n d i v i d u a l s i n t h e i r own r i g h t .
and
to develop the theme to i t s n a t u r a l c o n c l u s i o n .
The Watch that Ends the Night concludes
personal
quest.
Here the mythic p a r a l l e l s are
most e f f e c t i v e .
The author has
Homer to the quest
the human quest
the
archetype
turned
itself.
author's
least overt
and
from an open reworking o f
The
three b a s i c myths of
or c y c l e , the n a t u r a l c y c l e and
c y c l e are s u b t l y interwoven to the extent
the
transcendent
that they become
almost i n d i s t i n g u i s h a b l e and h a r d l y n o t i c e a b l e as myths.
One
senses i n the c u l t u r e - h e r o Jerome M a r t e l l the f r u s t r a t i o n of
s e a r c h , and
i n the
less heroic
(and
thus more r e p r e s e n t a t i v e )
George Stewart the d e s p a i r of f i n d i n g any
truth.
And
one
finds l i t t l e
difficulty
r e s o l u t i o n as b e l i e v a b l e and v a l u a b l e .
blends
the c l a s s i c a l and
the two.
and
f i n a l and
satisfying
i n accepting
the
final
In the n o v e l , MacLennan
the C h r i s t i a n to a r r i v e a t a s y n t h e s i s
Odysseus the human wanderer and
Jesus the messiah and
the
of
r e s u r r e c t e d sun-hero,
r e s u r r e c t e d man-god are s y n t h e s i z e d i n
Jerome M a r t e l l to become n e i t h e r w a r r i o r nor messiah but a wise
old
man.
By making the n a r r a t o r a c h a r a c t e r
author avoids
the
problem o f u p s e t t i n g the a r t i s t i c
i n t r u s i o n s of an o m n i s c i e n t
appears too d i d a c t i c and
teacher
n a r r a t o r , and,
u n i t y with
not understand, he h i m s e l f h a v i n g
who
the
i s a f r a i d h i s audience w i l l
difficulties.
In t h i s
way
speak to a wide audience, i n c l u d i n g those who
never have c o n s i d e r e d
the
i f George sometimes
even p a t r o n i z i n g , i t i s the f a u l t of
(the j o u r n a l i s t ) i n him,
MacLennan can
i n the s t o r y , the
such r e l i g i o u s - p h i l o s o p h i c a l
might
problems b e f o r e .
- 113. -
He can and does f u l f i l l h i s purpose o f i l l u m i n a t i n g , d e f i n i n g and
i n t e r p r e t i n g h i s age, and o f c r e a t i n g , f o r today's r a p i d l y changing
and thus unsure s o c i e t y , an independent system o f o r d e r o f h i s
own.
Hugh MacLennan i s a c l a s s i c a l
s c h o l a r , a j o u r n a l i s t and a
teacher o f E n g l i s h who w r i t e s n o v e l s .
L i k e another
intellectual
n o v e l i s t , Aldous Huxley, he has one f o o t i n the w o r l d o f a r t and
the
in
o t h e r i n the w o r l d o f t e a c h i n g .
Both w r i t e r s take time out
t h e i r n o v e l s to make d i d a c t i c a s i d e s i n which they r e l a t e the
g r e a t wide w o r l d o f h i s t o r y , p o l i t i c s ,
s c i e n c e , p h i l o s o p h y and
religion
to the s t o r i e s
they a r e t e l l i n g .
This i s a time-
honoured
p r a c t i c e i n the n o v e l , descending from w r i t e r s
like
Henry F i e l d i n g and George E l i o t , and which, a l t h o u g h perhaps
out
to
of fashion a t present, i s s t i l l v i a b l e .
Both w r i t e r s
seek
e x p l a i n the age to i t s e l f and to p r o v i d e a system o f v a l u e s ,
u s i n g e v e r y method a t t h e i r command.
Both men come to r e s t i n a
humanism c l o s e t o t h a t o f the c l a s s i c a l
resolution
Greeks:
Huxley's
( i n I s l a n d ) i s o v e r t l y r e l i g i o u s and s t r e s s e s the
o r i e n t a l p o i n t o f view; MacLennan's r e s o l u t i o n
( i n The Watch t h a t
Ends the N i g h t ) i s a l s o r e l i g i o u s but s t r e s s e s the o c c i d e n t a l
of
view.
Both r e s o l u t i o n s a r e e s s e n t i a l l y the same.
MacLennan's f i n a l v i s i o n o f the end o f s o c i a l e f f o r t
of
point
no end, a s o c i e t y unconnected w i t h s p e c i f i c
political
i s that
ideology
Joseph Campbell i n d i c a t e s , throughout The Masks o f God,
- 114.
-
--Marxism, f o r example, i s thrown a s i d e —
f o r such i d e o l o g i e s
are e v o l u t i o n a r y or m e s s i a n i c - a p o c a l y p t i c ,
p e r s p e c t i v e and
transcends
participation.
h i s t o r y , and
e n v i s i o n s i s one
i n which the i n d i v i d u a l and
in
Everyman,
and a l l humanity, are u n i t e d i n the knowledge
t h a t they cannot d e f e a t
as a p a r t of l i f e .
despair.
historical
MacLennan o f f e r s a view which
the i d e a l s o c i e t y he
which i d e o l o g i e s are n o t h i n g ,
the s o l i t a r y man
b e i n g based on
s u f f e r i n g and
This philosophy
death but must a c c e p t
i s not a p h i l o s o p h y
of
them
existential
I t i s beyond such d e s p a i r , which MacLennan sees as
d e s p a i r of the
" l o s t generation",
p a r t i c u l a r l y exemplified i n
l i t e r a t u r e by
the Hemingway hero (e.g., Jake Barnes, Robert
N i c k Adams).
MacLennan attempts to d i s p e l l
the myth of
i n d i c a t i n g i t s inadequacy i n such f i g u r e s as the
f i g h t e r A r c h i e MacNeil,
o n l y to death, and
whose g a l l a n t and
C i v i l War
despair,
courageous f i g h t
leads
does not
but r e t u r n s from h i s
involvement there w i t h a profound and a f f i r m a t i v e
o f humanism.
Jordan,
unsuccessful
the committed Jerome M a r t e l l , who
d i e " h e r o i c a l l y " i n the Spanish
the
philosophy
In The Watch t h a t Ends the N i g h t , MacLennan
attempts to e x p l a i n and
go beyond what S a l l y c a l l s
"those
a p p a l l i n g a d o l e s c e n t he-men l i k e Hemingway" (22), f o r such he-men
are men
without
women, o v e r l y masculine "heroes" who
balance
i n a world where the o n l y a l t e r n a t i v e i s d e s p a i r .
t h a t i n c l a s s i c a l Greek humanism the o r i e n t a l and
p o i n t s of view were u n i t e d .
lack
the o c c i d e n t a l
-
115.
I n s t e a d , he p o i n t s to the mythic c o n j u n c t i o n of sun and moon,
masculine
and
feminine,
s t r e s s i n g the example the moon
A i n s l i e , C a t h e r i n e ) g i v e s to men.
" o p t i m i s t i c view of l i f e
cyclically,
by a new
notes
Such l u n a r myths a f f o r d
i n general:
e v e r y t h i n g takes
place
MacLennan i s p a r t of a great modern movement
the p h i l o s o p h y of the e t e r n a l r e t u r n .
t h a t , " i t i s o n l y i n the c y c l i c a l
Mircea E l i a d e
t h e o r i e s of modern
t h a t the meaning of the a r c h a i c myth of e t e r n a l r e p t i t i o n
its
full
implications."
8
turned toward c y c l i c c o n c e p t i o n s
and
Toynbee.
e t e r n a l r e p e t i t i o n as the core concept
r e l a t i v e l y simple
d e p i c t s the c o n f l i c t
Ibid.,
p.
Writers
i n their philosophies.
i n Each Man s Son
1
The
"a
("a
transition
i n The Watch t h a t Ends the Night, which
"between the s p i r i t of Everyman and Everyman's
^Mircea E l i a d e , The Myth of the E t e r n a l Re t u r n (New
B o l l i n g e r , 1954), p. 102.
8
Science,
the myth of
i n Barometer R i s i n g (what he c a l l s
t a l e " ) , he continues
p i e c e " ) , and concludes
9
Theory.
B. Yeats, James Joyce, and Aldous Huxley use
quest MacLennan begins
realizes
of the u n i v e r s e i n , f o r
example, such t h i n g s as the E x p a n s i o n - C o n t r a c t i o n
l i k e W.
times
This p o i n t of view appears i n p h i l o s o p h e r s
l i k e N i e t z s c h e and h i s t o r i a n s l i k e Spengler
too, has
an
death i s i n e v i t a b l y f o l l o w e d by r e s u r r e c t i o n , c a t a c l y s m
Creation."^
revivifying
(Margaret
York:
146.
^ s i g n i f i c a n t l y , Toynbee uses an image v e r y l i k e one of
MacLennan's i n The Watch: "The c o l l e c t i v e unconscious underl i e s a c o n s c i o u s n e s s t h a t r i d e s on i t l i k e a c o c k l e s h e l l
f l o a t i n g p r e c a r i o u s l y on a bottomless and s h o r e l e s s ocean."
C i v i l i z a t i o n on T r i a l (New York: Oxford U. P r e s s , 1948), p. 255.
human c o n d i t i o n , " 1 0
to
a c o n f l i c t which i s never-ending.
d i s c o v e r peace d i s c o v e r s peace i n the f a c t
The
quest
t h a t the quest
is
never ended.
MacLennan o f f e r s
to
the n a t i o n and
t h i s philosophy
to the w o r l d :
to h i s i n d i v i d u a l
that l i f e
itself
i s a quest,
the i n d i v i d u a l , f o r the r a c e , f o r the s p i r i t
of l i f e
he
portrayed
p r o v i d e s as an example h i s p e r s o n a l
c o n t i n u i n g quest
quest
of h i s f i c t i o n a l c h a r a c t e r s .
reader
itself,
for
and
i n the
As a Canadian, he
asks,
Is i t p o s s i b l e f o r so few people to meet the c h a l l e n g e of t h i s
v a s t n e s s and mystery, of t h i s v a r i e t y o f the l a n d where we l i v e
.
Is i t u n r e a l to b e l i e v e that people can love an e t e r n a l q u e s t i o n
mark? Or does the q u e s t i o n mark, perhaps, answer t h a t l a t t e r
query? For s u r e l y i t i s t r u e that so long as the f a t e of a
person or a n a t i o n i s s t i l l i n doubt, t h a t person or n a t i o n i s
a l i v e and r e a l . H
He
says t h i s of the n a t i o n .
1960)
pp.
He means i t f o r the w o r l d .
"The S t o r y o f a N o v e l , "
36-39.
Canadian L i t e r a t u r e , 3
T h e R i v e r s of Canada (New
1962), p. 170.
x i
York:
Charles
(Winter
S c r i b n e r ' s Sons
BIBLIOGRAPHY
A.
Primary Sources
MacLennan, Hugh. Barometer
Stewart, 1958.
.
Rising.
Toronto:
"Canada Between C o v e r s . "
XXIV, 36
Saturday Review o f L i t e r a t u r e ,
(Sept. 7, 1946), pp. 5-6,
.
Cross-Country.
.
Each Man's Son.
McClelland &
Toronto:
28-30.
Collins,
Toronto:
1949.
M c C l e l l a n d & Stewart,
.
" F i c t i o n i n the Age of S c i e n c e . " The Western
Review, V I , 4 (Autumn 1952), pp. 325-34.
.
"The F u t u r e Trend i n the N o v e l . "
Bookman, XXIV (Sept. 1948), pp. 3-5.
. "The Older Quest."
pp. 120-26.
Humanities
Canadian Author and
D a l h o u s i e Review, XXXV (Summer
.
The R i v e r s of Canada.
Sons, 1962.
.
1965.
New
York:
1955),
Charles Scribner's
Scotchman's Return and Other E s s a y s .
Toronto:
Macmillan,
I960.
.
"The S t o r y o f a N o v e l . "
Canadian L i t e r a t u r e , 3 (Winter
1960), pp. 35-39.
.
T h i r t y and Three.
.
The Watch t h a t Ends the N i g h t .
Library
o f World L i t e r a t u r e ,
B.
1.
Toronto:
Secondary
Macmillan,
New
1954.
York:
New
American
1960.
Sources
General:
Auden, W. H. The Enchafed F l o o d . New York:
Random House,
1950.
Campbell, Joseph.
The Hero With a Thousand Faces. New York:
Pantheon, 1949.
.
The Masks o f God:
M a c M i l l a n , 1959.
Primitive
Mythology.
Toronto:
-
118.
.
The Masks of God:
M a c m i l l a n , 1962.
O r i e n t a l Mythology.
.
The Masks o f God:
M a c m i l l a n , 1964.
O c c i d e n t a l Mythology.
Camus, A l b e r t .
New York:
Toronto:
Toronto:
The Myth o f S i s y p h u s , Trans, J u s t i n O'Brien.
A l f r e d A. Knopf, 1959.
Chase, R i c h a r d .
Quest f o r Myth.
S t a t e U. P r e s s , 1949.
Baton Rouge, L a . :
Louisiana
Cohen, J . M. and Cohen M. J . The Penguin D i c t i o n a r y o f Q u o t a t i o n s .
Harmondsworth, M i d d l e s e x : Penguin, 1960.
Frye, Northrop.
1966.
Anatomy o f C r i t i c i s m .
New
York:
Atheneum,
.
" C o n c l u s i o n . " L i t e r a r y H i s t o r y o f Canada, ed.,
C a r l F. K l i n c k .
Toronto: U. of Toronto P r e s s , 1965,
pp. 821-849.
•
Fables of I d e n t i t y .
New
York:
H a r c o u r t , Brace, 1963,
Grant, M i c h a e l . Myths o f the Greeks and Romans. New
New American L i b r a r y of World L i t e r a t u r e , 1962.
Graves, Robert.
1948.
The White Goddess.
)
Toronto:
York:
Random House,
Homer. The Odyssey, t r a n s , Robert F i t z g e r a l d .
N. Y.:
Doubleday, 1963.
Garden
Jones, W. T. A H i s t o r y of Western P h i l o s o p h y .
H a r c o u r t , Brace, 1952.
New
City,
York:
Knoepflmacher, U. C.
R e l i g i o u s Humanism and the V i c t o r i a n
Novel.
P r i n c e t o n , N. J . : P r i n c e t o n U. P r e s s , 1965.
M a c N e i l l , F. M.
The S i l v e r Bough.
Glasgow:
W. MacLennan, 1957.
Murray, Henry A.
"The P o s s i b l e Nature o f a 'Mythology' to Come."
Myth and Mythmaking, ed., H. A. Murray.
New York:
George
B r a z i l l e r , 1960.
Pacey, Desmond.
" F i c t i o n (1920-1940)."
L i t e r a r y H i s t o r y of
Canada, ed., C a r l F. K l i n c k .
Toronto: U. o f Toronto
P r e s s , 1965, pp. 658-693.
S t a n f o r d , W. B.
The U l y s s e s Theme.
& Mott, 1963.
Oxford:
Basil.
Blackwell
-
119.
Toynbee, A r n o l d .
C i v i l i z a t i o n on T r i a l .
U. P r e s s , 1948.
2.
New
York:
Oxford
On Hugh MacLennan:
D a n i e l l s , Roy.
"Poetry and F i c t i o n . "
The C u l t u r e o f
Contemporary Canada, ed., J u l i a n Parks.
I t h a c a , N.
C o r n e l l U. P r e s s , 1957.
R e l a t e s MacLennan to g e n e r a l c u l t u r a l scene.
Y.:
Goetsch, P a u l .
Das Romanwerk Hugh MacLennans: e i n e S t u d i e
zum l i t j c i r i s c h e n N a t i o n a l i s m u s i n Kanada. Hamburg:
G r u y t e r , 1961.
A g e n e r a l d i s c u s s i o n o f MacLennan's n o v e l s from Barometer
R i s i n g to The Watch t h a t Ends the N i g h t , c o n s i d e r i n g them
as an e x p r e s s i o n of n a t i o n a l i s m .
Contains the most
complete b i b l i o g r a p h y of MacLennan's work and work on
MacLennan to be found anywhere.
.
"Too Long to the C o u r t l y Muses." Canadian L i t e r a t u r e ,
10 (Autumn 1961), pp. 19-31.
A c r i t i c a l a r t i c l e which r e l a t e s MacLennan to the
c l a s s i c a l t r a d i t i o n , u s i n g a Jungian p o i n t o f view.
Hicks, G r a n v i l l e .
" N o v e l i s t s i n the F i f t i e s . "
Saturday Review
of L i t e r a t u r e , 42 (Oct. 24, 1959), pp. 18-20.
P l a c e s MacLennan i n the main stream of contemporary n o v e l
writing.
Lucas, A l e c .
" I n t r o d u c t i o n . " Each Man's Son.
Toronto:
M c C l e l l a n d and Stewart, 1965.
A p e r c e p t i v e look a t the n o v e l , f o c u s i n g on MacLennan's
approach to C a l v i n i s m .
McPherson, Hugo. " F i c t i o n (1940-60)." L i t e r a r y H i s t o r y of
Canada, ed., C a r l F. K l i n c k . Toronto:
U. of Toronto
P r e s s , 1965, pp. 694-722.
P l a c e s MacLennan i n the g e n e r a l stream of Canadian n o v e l
writing.
Necessarily rather s u p e r f i c i a l .
Sometimes q u i t e
m i s l e a d i n g ; e.g., " . . .
someone remarks t h a t she
[ C a t h e r i n e , i n The. Watch t h a t Ends the NightT) i s a symbol
of 'our s i c k c i v i l i z a t i o n ' . "
.
" I n t r o d u c t i o n . " Barometer R i s i n g .
Toronto:
M c C l e l l a n d & Stewart, 1958.
An e x c e l l e n t i n t r o d u c t i o n to the n o v e l .
T e l l s the average
reader enough to keep h i s i n t e r e s t without b e i n g h e a v i l y
academic.
- 120.
.
"The Novels of Hugh MacLennan." Queen's Q u a r t e r l y ,
LX (Summer 1953), pp. 189-98.
The themes and forms of MacLennan's f i r s t f o u r n o v e l s a r e
examined i n r e l a t i o n to each o t h e r .
New, W i l l i a m H.
"The A p p r e n t i c e s h i p of D i s c o v e r y . "
Canadian
L i t e r a t u r e , 29 (Summer 1966), pp. 18-33.
A comparison o f Mordecai R i c h l e r ' s The A p p r e n t i c e s h i p o f
Duddy K r a v i t z and MacLennan's The Watch t h a t Ends the N i g h t ,
s t r e s s i n g the thematic s i m i l a r i t i e s .
Pacey, Desmond. C r e a t i v e W r i t i n g i n Canada, r e v . and e n l .
Toronto: Ryerson, 1961.
Short and to the p o i n t . Sets MacLennan's work i n
p e r s p e c t i v e , a l o n g s i d e o t h e r Canadian n o v e l i s t s ' , e.g.,
Morley C a l l a g h a n and Mordecai R i c h l e r .
.
"The Novel i n Canada." Queen's Q u a r t e r l y , L I I
(Autumn 1945), pp. 322-32.
An e a r l y look a t MacLennan's w r i t i n g which has now been
g e n e r a l l y superseded.
Phelps, A. L. Canadian W r i t e r s .
Toronto:
McClelland &
Stewart, 1951, pp. 77-84.
Rather too simple i n approach and treatment to be o f much
v a l u e to the l i t e r a r y c r i t i c .
S u t h e r l a n d , Ronald.
"Twin S o l i t u d e s . " Canadian L i t e r a t u r e ,
31 (Winter 1967), pp. 5-24.
A comparison o f E n g l i s h and French Canadian n o v e l s w i t h
some i n t e r e s t i n g comments on Hugh MacLennan.
Tallman, Warren. "Wolf i n the Snow: P a r t One, Four Windows
on to Landscapes." Canadian L i t e r a t u r e , 5 (Summer 1960),
pp. 7-20.
A b r i e f look a t the dramatic c o n f l i c t s a t work i n Each
Man's Son, comparing the n o v e l w i t h f o u r o t h e r modern
Canadian n o v e l s .
.
"Wolf i n the Snow: Part Two, The House Repossessed."
Canadian L i t e r a t u r e , 6 (Autumn 1960), pp. 41-48.
The c o n c l u s i o n to the two part essay.
Heaviest stress
i s put on R i c h l e r ' s The A p p r e n t i c e s h i p of Duddy K r a v i t z .
Thomas, C l a r a . Canadian N o v e l i s t s . Toronto:
Longmans, Green,
1946, pp. 87-88.
The l i t t l e i n f o r m a t i o n g i v e n about MacLennan i s m o s t l y
biographical.
- 121.
Watters, R. E.
"Hugh MacLennan and the N a t i o n a l C h a r a c t e r . "
As A Man Thinks . . . , ed., E. M o r r i s o n and W. Robbins.
Toronto: Gage, 1953, pp. 228-43.
W i l s o n , Edmund. "0 Canada."
The New Yorker (Nov. 14, 1964).
Republished i n book form w i t h i t s companion p i e c e s ,
New York: F a r r a r , Straus and G i r o u x , 1965.
An i n t e r e s t i n g and o f t e n v a l u a b l e e x a m i n a t i o n o f
MacLennan's n o v e l s .
Woodcock, George.
"Hugh MacLennan." N o r t h e r n Review, 3
(Apr.-May 1950), pp. 2-10.
One o f the f i r s t r e a l l y p e r c e p t i v e looks a t MacLennan's
work, p l a c i n g him i n Canadian and w o r l d l i t e r a t u r e .
.
"A N a t i o n ' s Odyssey.
Canadian L i t e r a t u r e , 10
(Autumn 1961), pp. 7-18.
R e l a t e s MacLennan's work to c l a s s i c a l l i t e r a t u r e .
11
Contains the g e r m i n a l i d e a s which gave r i s e to t h i s
thesis.
Reviews
Barometer
Andrews, G. C.
Rising
Canadian Forum, 21 (Dec. 1941), p. 282.
Saturday Review o f L i t e r a t u r e ,
Southron, J . S.
New
24 (Oct. 25, 1941), p. 21.
York Times
(Oct. 5, 1941), p. 32.
Each Man's Son
Allen,
Thomas.
Ballantyne,
New
York Times
Murray.
Smith, H a r r i s o n .
(Apr. 15, 1951), p. 5.
Commonweal, 54 (Apr. 20, 1951), p. 46.
Saturday Review o f L i t e r a t u r e , 34
(Jan. 9,
P. 11.
The Watch that Ends the Night
Fowke, E d i t h .
Canadian Forum, 39
(Jan. 1959), p. 66.
Hicks, G r a n v i l l e .
Saturday Review o f L i t e r a t u r e ,
(Feb. 28, 1959), p. 15.
O'Hearn, W a l t e r .
New
York Times
42
(Feb. 15, 1959), p. 4.
1951)
- 122.
Woodcock, George.
"Odysseus Ever R e t u r n i n g . "
2 ( S p r i n g 1959), pp. 77-79.
Tamarack
Review,